Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n church_n great_a schism_n 1,418 5 9.7695 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A17642 The commentaries of M. Iohn Caluin vpon the Actes of the Apostles, faithfully translated out of Latine into English for the great profite of our countrie-men, by Christopher Fetherstone student in diuinitie; Commentarii in Acta Apostolorum. English Calvin, Jean, 1509-1564.; Fetherston, Christopher. 1585 (1585) STC 4398; ESTC S107377 721,474 648

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o commentary_n of_o m._n john_n calvin_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n faithful_o translate_v out_o of_o latin_a into_o english_a for_o the_o great_a profit_n of_o our_o countryman_n by_o christopher_n fetherstone_n student_n in_o divinity_n londini_fw-la impensis_fw-la g._n bishop_n 1585._o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a the_o lord_n henry_n earl_n of_o huntingdon_n lord_n hastings_n etc._n etc._n knight_n of_o the_o most_o honourable_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n and_o lord_n precedent_n of_o the_o queen_n majesty_n counsel_n establish_v in_o the_o north_n part_n christopher_n fetherstone_n wish_v increase_v of_o spiritual_a gift_n long_a life_n and_o happy_a day_n if_o that_o right_a honourable_a i_o shall_v prefix_v any_o long_a and_o tedious_a preface_n before_o this_o work_n in_o commendation_n of_o your_o honour_n i_o shall_v of_o some_o be_v suspect_v of_o flattery_n if_o in_o praise_n of_o these_o learned_a commentary_n it_o shall_v seem_v a_o thing_n superfluous_a see_v they_o sufficient_o commend_v themselves_o if_o in_o excuse_n of_o those_o fault_n which_o be_v by_o i_o in_o translate_n hereof_o commit_v some_o censure_a cato_n will_v condemn_v i_o because_o i_o will_v take_v in_o hand_n a_o work_n so_o weighty_a be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v without_o fault_n and_o by_o crave_v pardon_n for_o fault_n lay_v open_a my_o folly_n omit_v therefore_o these_o thing_n which_o may_v carry_v with_o they_o such_o inconvenience_n i_o hasten_v unto_o that_o whereof_o i_o be_o chief_o to_o speak_v namely_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o cause_n move_v i_o to_o dedicate_v this_o my_o simple_a translation_n unto_o your_o honor._n your_o desert_n of_o god_n church_n your_o singular_a zeal_n your_o unfeigned_a faith_n your_o sincere_a profession_n your_o especial_a care_n to_o advance_v god_n glory_n and_o to_o root_v out_o papistry_n your_o faithfulness_n toward_o your_o prince_n have_v be_v such_o that_o this_o realm_n general_o but_o my_o countryman_n in_o the_o north_n part_n my_o native_a soil_n special_o have_v &_o shall_v have_v great_a cause_n to_o praise_n god_n for_o you_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o visitation_n even_o when_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n of_o his_o great_a mercy_n to_o behold_v they_o with_o favourable_a countenance_n and_o to_o take_v from_o they_o in_o great_a measure_n that_o blindness_n and_o superstition_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v long_a time_n nousle_v and_o be_v fast_o breed_v by_o the_o bone_n be_v not_o yet_o through_o want_n of_o mean_n get_v out_o of_o the_o flesh_n see_v all_o these_o virtue_n be_v in_o you_o to_o be_v find_v see_v both_o this_o church_n and_o country_n have_v find_v you_o so_o beneficial_a who_o ought_v not_o these_o thing_n to_o provoke_v to_o show_v all_o thankfulness_n towards_o your_o honour_n again_o when_o this_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v first_o pen_v in_o gr_n …_o by_o luke_n it_o be_v dedicate_v to_o noble_a theophilus_n when_o m._n caluin_n do_v the_o second_o time_n publish_v his_o commentary_n thereupon_o in_o latin_a he_o present_v they_o unto_o one_o who_o be_v in_o mind_n a_o noble_a theophilus_n lest_o therefore_o this_o work_n now_o publish_v in_o english_a shall_v by_o dedication_n be_v any_o whit_n debase_v i_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o your_o honour_n be_v no_o less_o a_o noble_a theophilus_n than_o those_o before_o mention_v another_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o cause_n as_o a_o encouragement_n be_v that_o courtesy_n which_o your_o honour_n show_v to_o those_o which_o present_v unto_o you_o any_o exercise_n of_o learning_n how_o simple_a soever_o they_o be_v whereof_o i_o have_v have_v full_a good_a experience_n even_o in_o my_o tender_a year_n namely_o at_o such_o time_n as_o i_o be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o city_n of_o carlisle_n under_o that_o man_n in_o his_o call_n painful_a and_o to_o the_o commonwealth_n profitable_a m._n hayes_n who_o for_o that_o duty_n which_o to_o he_o i_o owe_v i_o name_n at_o which_o time_n though_o those_o exercise_n which_o unto_o your_o honour_n we_o then_o present_v be_v simple_a yet_o be_v they_o so_o courteous_o of_o you_o receive_v that_o the_o remembrance_n thereof_o do_v even_o now_o encourage_v i_o to_o presume_v to_o offer_v unto_o you_o some_o weighty_a matter_n the_o last_o but_o not_o the_o least_o be_v the_o consideration_n of_o that_o great_a &_o undeserued_a kindness_n which_o all_o my_o friend_n in_o general_a but_o especial_o my_o brother_n your_o honour_n servant_n have_v find_v at_o your_o hand_n which_o to_o rip_v up_o at_o large_a will_v be_v too_o tedious_a in_o their_o behalf_n therefore_o right_a honourable_a as_o also_o in_o my_o own_o as_o a_o small_a testimony_n of_o a_o thankful_a heart_n i_o present_v unto_o your_o honour_n this_o work_n simple_a if_o you_o respect_v the_o translation_n but_o most_o excellent_a if_o you_o consider_v the_o matter_n and_o thus_o humble_o crave_v pardon_n for_o my_o boldness_n and_o much_o more_o humble_o beseech_v the_o lord_n to_o bless_v you_o in_o the_o read_n hereof_o i_o conclude_v fear_v prolixity_n the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n bless_v you_o and_o grant_v that_o as_o you_o have_v be_v heretofore_o a_o good_a theophilus_n so_o you_o may_v continue_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o increase_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o profit_n of_o this_o common_a wealth_n from_o maighfield_n in_o sussex_n this_o 12._o of_o october_n 1585._o your_o honour_n most_o humble_a and_o obedient_a and_o in_o christ_n at_o commandment_n christopher_n fetherstone_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n thou_o have_v at_o length_n christian_n reader_n through_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o have_v bless_v my_o labour_n those_o learned_a commentary_n of_o m._n caluin_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n though_o simple_o yet_o faithful_o turn_v into_o english_a &_o though_o of_o many_o i_o be_v the_o unmeet_a to_o attempt_v this_o travel_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o earnest_a request_n of_o my_o godly_a friend_n that_o unless_o i_o shall_v have_v take_v it_o in_o hand_n i_o shall_v have_v seem_v void_a of_o courtesy_n and_o also_o of_o care_n to_o profit_n god_n his_o church_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o rip_v up_o those_o commodity_n which_o thou_o by_o read_v these_o commentary_n may_v reap_v but_o i_o leave_v they_o to_o thy_o own_o experience_n what_o my_o travel_n have_v be_v in_o this_o work_n those_o who_o have_v endure_v like_o toil_n can_v best_o judge_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o i_o know_v well_o that_o after_o great_a pain_n take_v some_o thing_n have_v escape_v i_o i_o beseech_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n condemn_v i_o not_o rash_o but_o rather_o amend_v they_o friendly_a if_o thou_o shall_v grow_v forward_o in_o knowledge_n by_o read_v this_o work_n than_o praise_n god_n who_o have_v by_o this_o mean_v make_v thou_o profit_n god_n give_v thou_o good_a success_n in_o read_v that_o thereby_o thou_o may_v both_o be_v better_o learn_v and_o also_o better_o live_v thou_o in_o the_o lord_n christopher_n fetherstone_n to_o the_o most_o renown_a prince_n the_o l._n nicolas_n radziwill_n duke_n in_o olika_n county_n palatine_n of_o vilna_n chief_a marshal_n and_o head_n chauncellar_n of_o the_o great_a dukedom_n lethuania_n etc._n etc._n his_o lord_n high_o to_o be_v reverence_v john_n caluin_n whereas_o i_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o name_n of_o those_o king_n unto_o who_o i_o have_v dedicate_v these_o my_o commentary_n lest_o the_o change_n incur_v the_o crime_n of_o lightness_n among_o certain_a unskilful_a man_n i_o must_v brief_o render_v some_o reason_n thereof_o for_o although_o both_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v dead_a do_v retain_v that_o reverence_n with_o i_o which_o it_o deserve_v and_o i_o do_v also_o as_o become_v i_o reverence_v the_o son_n yet_o the_o importunatenes_n of_o certain_a do_v enforce_v i_o to_o put_v out_o their_o name_n in_o this_o second_o edition_n who_o be_v incense_v against_o i_o with_o a_o furious_a hatred_n and_o fear_n lest_o the_o majesty_n of_o king_n do_v purchase_v some_o favour_n to_o my_o writing_n do_v boast_v abroad_o that_o they_o do_v conceive_v sore_a displeasure_n that_o their_o name_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o they_o themselves_o disallow_v i_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a whether_o that_o be_v true_a or_o no_o neither_o do_v i_o pass_v forasmuch_o as_o i_o do_v neither_o hunt_n after_o any_o private_a gain_n ne_o yet_o seek_v to_o win_v favour_n but_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o undecent_a and_o filthy_a thing_n to_o enforce_v those_o book_n upon_o man_n which_o be_v unwilling_a to_o entertain_v they_o which_o do_v find_v willing_a reader_n enough_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o declare_v now_o that_o i_o never_o do_v think_v any_o thing_n less_o but_o that_o i_o do_v hope_n for_o more_o courtesy_n
baptize_v and_o there_o be_v add_v that_o day_n about_o three_o thousand_o soul_n 42_o and_o they_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o in_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n 40_o and_o with_o many_o although_o in_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v have_v hitherto_o luke_n do_v not_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o saint_n peter_n but_o do_v only_o brief_o touch_v the_o chief_a point_n notwithstanding_o he_o tell_v we_o again_o in_o this_o place_n that_o peter_n do_v not_o use_v doctrine_n only_o but_o do_v add_v the_o prick_v of_o exhortation_n and_o he_o express_v plain_o that_o he_o stand_v much_o hereupon_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v exhort_v and_o beseech_v he_o note_v therein_o his_o earnestness_n for_o it_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a a_o matter_n for_o they_o by_o and_o by_o to_o take_v their_o leave_n of_o those_o error_n wherewith_o they_o be_v of_o late_o infect_v and_o to_o shake_v off_o the_o government_n of_o the_o priest_n whereunto_o they_o be_v accustom_v therefore_o it_o stand_v he_o upon_o to_o pull_v they_o violent_o out_o of_o this_o mire_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o they_o shall_v beware_v of_o that_o froward_a generation_n for_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christ_n unless_o they_o will_v depart_v from_o his_o profess_a enemy_n the_o priest_n and_o scribe_n be_v then_o in_o great_a authority_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v cover_v themselves_o under_o the_o visure_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v deceive_v the_o simple_a this_o do_v hinder_v and_o keep_v back_o a_o great_a many_o from_o come_v to_o christ_n also_o some_o may_v waver_v &_o other_o some_o may_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o right_a faith_n therefore_o peter_n plain_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v a_o froward_a generation_n howsoever_o they_o make_v boast_v of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o command_v his_o hearer_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o lest_o they_o entangle_v themselves_o in_o their_o wicked_a and_o pestiferous_a fellowship_n whereas_o he_o say_v be_v you_o save_v he_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v sure_o perish_v if_o they_o couple_v themselves_o with_o such_o a_o plague_n and_o sure_o experience_n do_v teach_v we_o how_o miserable_o those_o man_n be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o who_o can_v discern_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o pastor_n from_o the_o voice_n of_o other_o man_n and_o again_o what_o a_o hindrance_n softness_n and_o sluggisheesse_n be_v to_o a_o great_a many_o while_o they_o desire_v to_o stand_v in_o a_o doubt_n therefore_o he_o command_v they_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o wicked_a if_o they_o will_v be_v save_v and_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v for_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v christ_n set_v before_o we_o unless_o we_o be_v also_o teach_v to_o fly_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v lead_v we_o away_o from_o he_o and_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a shepherd_n to_o defend_v his_o sheep_n from_o the_o wolf_n so_o at_o this_o day_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v keep_v the_o people_n in_o the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o be_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o enforce_v to_o show_v and_o testify_v how_o much_o papistry_n differ_v from_o christianity_n and_o what_o a_o hurtful_a plague_n it_o be_v to_o be_v yoke_v with_o the_o unfaithful_a enemy_n of_o christ_n neither_o ought_v peter_n to_o be_v accuse_v of_o rail_v because_o he_o call_v the_o reverend_a father_n who_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o hand_n at_o that_o day_n a_o froward_a generation_n for_o those_o danger_n which_o may_v draw_v the_o soul_n unto_o destruction_n be_v to_o be_v show_v by_o their_o name_n for_o man_n will_v not_o beware_v of_o poison_n unless_o they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v poison_n 41_o they_o therefore_o which_o willing_o luke_n show_v more_o plain_o how_o fruitful_a this_o one_o sermon_n which_o peter_n make_v be_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o gain_v unto_o christ_n about_o three_o thousand_o man_n and_o therewithal_o he_o declare_v the_o nature_n and_o force_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o say_v that_o with_o a_o prompt_a and_o ready_a mind_n they_o embrace_v his_o word_n therefore_o faith_n must_v begin_v with_o this_o readiness_n and_o willing_a desire_n to_o obey_v but_o because_o many_o do_v show_v themselves_o at_o the_o first_o very_o willing_a who_o afterward_o have_v in_o themselves_o no_o constancy_n or_o continuance_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o it_o be_v some_o sudden_a pang_n which_o by_o and_o by_o fall_v away_o luke_n do_v also_o afterward_o commend_v their_o constancy_n who_o as_o he_o say_v do_v willing_o embrace_v this_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o they_o be_v join_v unto_o the_o disciple_n or_o that_o they_o be_v engraft_v into_o the_o same_o body_n and_o that_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o doctrine_n therefore_o we_o must_v neither_o be_v slow_a to_o obey_v ne_o yet_o swift_a to_o leap_v back_o but_o we_o must_v stick_v fast_o and_o stand_v stout_o to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o we_o do_v forthwith_o without_o any_o tarriance_n embrace_v furthermore_o this_o example_n ought_v to_o make_v we_o not_o a_o little_a ashamed_a for_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n convert_v unto_o christ_n with_o one_o sermon_n a_o hundred_o sermon_n can_v scarce_o move_v a_o few_o of_o we_o and_o whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o continue_v there_o be_v scarce_o one_o among_o ten_o that_o do_v show_v even_o a_o mean_a desire_n to_o profit_n and_o go_v forward_o yea_o rather_o the_o more_o part_n do_v soon_o loath_a our_o doctrine_n woe_n be_v therefore_o to_o the_o sluggishness_n and_o lightness_n of_o the_o world_n in_o their_o doctrine_n luke_n do_v not_o only_o commend_v in_o they_o the_o constancy_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o godliness_n but_o he_o say_v also_o that_o they_o do_v constant_o give_v themselves_o to_o those_o exercise_n which_o serve_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o study_v continual_o to_o profit_n by_o hear_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o give_v themselves_o much_o to_o prayer_n that_o they_o do_v use_v fellowship_n and_o break_n of_o bread_n very_o much_o as_o touch_v prayer_n and_o doctrine_n the_o sense_n be_v plain_a communication_n or_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n may_v be_v take_v diverse_o some_o think_v that_o break_n of_o bread_n do_v signify_v the_o lord_n supper_n othersome_a do_v think_v that_o it_o signify_v alm_n othersome_a that_o the_o faithful_a do_v banquet_n together_o among_o themselves_o some_o do_v think_v that_o coinonia_fw-la do_v signify_v the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n but_o i_o do_v rather_o agree_v to_o those_o other_o who_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n for_o coinonia_fw-la unless_o it_o have_v somewhat_o add_v unto_o it_o be_v never_o find_v in_o this_o sense_n therefore_o i_o do_v rather_o refer_v it_o unto_o mutual_a society_n and_o fellowship_n unto_o alm_n and_o unto_o other_o duty_n of_o brotherly_a fellowship_n and_o my_o reason_n why_o i_o will_v rather_o have_v break_v of_o bread_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o this_o place_n be_v this_o because_o luke_n do_v reckon_v up_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o public_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v contain_v yea_o he_o express_v in_o this_o place_n four_o mark_n whereby_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a face_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v judge_v do_v we_o then_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o image_n thereof_o be_v lively_o depaint_v and_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o this_o place_n and_o he_o begin_v with_o doctrine_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v he_o name_v all_o manner_n of_o doctrine_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v that_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v deliver_v by_o their_o hand_n therefore_o wheresoever_o the_o pure_a voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v sound_a where_o man_n continue_v in_o the_o profession_n thereof_o where_o they_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o hear_v the_o same_o ordinary_o that_o they_o may_v profit_v without_o all_o doubt_n there_o be_v the_o church_n hereby_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v how_o frivolous_a the_o boast_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v while_o that_o they_o careless_o thunder_v out_o with_o full_a mouth_n the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v most_o filthy_o corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o it_o be_v due_o examine_v we_o shall_v find_v no_o sound_a part_n at_o all_o and_o in_o most_o point_n they_o do_v as_o much_o dissent_n from_o the_o same_o and_o have_v as_o little_a agreement_n therewith_o as_o light_v with_o darkness_n the_o rule_n of_o worship_v god_n which_o
ought_v to_o be_v fetch_v out_o of_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n alone_o be_v only_o make_v and_o patch_v together_o among_o the_o papist_n of_o the_o superstitious_a invention_n of_o man_n they_o have_v translate_v unto_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v rest_v in_o christ_n alone_o the_o invocation_n of_o god_n be_v altogether_o pollute_a with_o innumerable_a profane_a dotinge_n of_o man_n final_o whatsoever_o be_v hear_v among_o they_o it_o be_v either_o a_o deform_v of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n or_o else_o a_o clear_a overthrow_v and_o destroy_v of_o the_o same_o therefore_o we_o may_v as_o easy_o refute_v the_o foolish_a arrogancy_n of_o the_o papist_n as_o they_o can_v cloak_n their_o deal_n with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o state_n whether_o they_o have_v retain_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n from_o which_o they_o be_v as_o far_o as_o hell_n be_v from_o heaven_n but_o they_o be_v wise_a enough_o in_o that_o point_n because_o they_o will_v have_v no_o controversy_n move_v about_o doctrine_n but_o we_o as_o i_o have_v say_v may_v free_o contemn_v that_o vain_a visure_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v pronounce_v that_o the_o church_n be_v principal_o to_o be_v esteem_v and_o discern_v by_o this_o mark_n if_o the_o simplicity_n or_o purity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n do_v flourish_v and_o be_v of_o force_n in_o the_o same_o in_o fellowship_n this_o member_n and_o the_o last_o do_v flow_v from_o the_o first_o as_o fruit_n or_o effect_n for_o doctrine_n be_v the_o bond_n of_o brotherlie_a fellowship_n among_o we_o and_o do_v also_o set_v open_a unto_o we_o the_o gate_n unto_o god_n that_o we_o may_v call_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o supper_n be_v add_v unto_o doctrine_n in_o steed_n of_o a_o confirmation_n wherefore_o luke_n do_v not_o in_o vain_a reckon_v up_o these_o four_o thing_n when_o as_o he_o will_v describe_v unto_o we_o the_o well_o order_a state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o must_v endeavour_n to_o keep_v and_o observe_v this_o order_n if_o we_o will_v be_v true_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o church_n before_o god_n and_o the_o angel_n and_o not_o only_o to_o make_v boast_n of_o the_o name_n thereof_o among_o man_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o public_a prayer_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o man_n to_o make_v their_o pray_n at_o home_n by_o themselves_o unless_o they_o meet_v altogether_o to_o pray_v wherein_o consist_v also_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n 43_o and_o there_o come_v fear_n upon_o every_o soul_n and_o many_o wonder_n and_o sign_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o apostle_n 44_o and_o all_o those_o which_o believe_v be_v join_v together_o and_o have_v all_o thing_n common_a 45_o and_o they_o sell_v their_o possession_n and_o substance_n and_o do_v part_v they_o to_o all_o man_n as_o every_o man_n have_v need_v 43_o and_o there_o come_v he_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o show_n and_o sight_n of_o the_o church_n be_v such_o that_o it_o make_v other_o afraid_a which_o do_v not_o consent_v unto_o doctrine_n and_o that_o be_v do_v for_o the_o preserve_n and_o further_a of_o the_o church_n when_o there_o arise_v any_o sect_n all_o man_n set_v themselves_o stout_o against_o the_o same_o and_o as_o novelty_n be_v odious_a the_o jew_n will_v never_o have_v suffer_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o stand_v one_o minute_n of_o a_o hour_n unless_o the_o lord_n have_v restrain_v they_o with_o fear_n as_o with_o a_o bridle_n furthermore_o luke_n note_v the_o manner_n of_o fear_n that_o it_o be_v no_o such_o fear_n as_o bring_v man_n unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n but_o such_o as_o cause_v man_n to_o stand_v in_o a_o doubt_n and_o so_o consequent_o do_v as_o it_o be_v so_o bind_v they_o hand_n and_o foot_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o hinder_v the_o lord_n work_n like_a as_o there_o be_v some_o at_o this_o day_n who_o will_v willing_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o gospel_n or_o at_o least_o be_v so_o hold_v with_o the_o care_n of_o this_o world_n that_o they_o can_v thorough_o join_v themselves_o unto_o christ_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o so_o hard_o heart_v but_o that_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v on_o our_o side_n and_o therefore_o the_o rest_n be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o mid_n way_n neither_o do_v they_o favour_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o wicked_a because_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o strive_v against_o god_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v every_o soul_n he_o speak_v thus_o by_o synecdoche_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o do_v contemn_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o that_o othersome_a be_v strike_v with_o no_o great_a fear_n but_o that_o they_o do_v furious_o rage_n together_o against_o the_o church_n but_o luke_n his_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o there_o appear_v such_o power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o people_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v not_o one_o word_n to_o say_v and_o many_o wonder_n this_o member_n serve_v also_o to_o the_o show_v of_o the_o cause_n for_o the_o miracle_n serve_v to_o make_v they_o afraid_a together_o with_o other_o work_n of_o god_n although_o this_o be_v not_o the_o only_a reason_n but_o one_o of_o many_o why_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o set_v themselves_o against_o god_n who_o be_v on_o that_o side_n as_o they_o do_v gather_v by_o the_o miracle_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o profitable_a for_o this_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o god_n but_o also_o to_o make_v the_o wicked_a somewhat_o more_o gentle_a and_o that_o they_o may_v tame_v their_o furiousness_n pharaoh_n be_v a_o man_n of_o desperate_a stubborness_n 19_o exo._n 8.8_o &c_n &c_n 19_o and_o yet_o we_o see_v how_o miracle_n do_v sometime_o pierce_v his_o obstinate_a heart_n he_o forget_v they_o by_o and_o by_o but_o when_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v heavy_a upon_o he_o he_o be_v compel_v through_o fear_n to_o yield_v to_o be_v brief_a luke_n teach_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v by_o this_o mean_v keep_v back_o that_o the_o church_n which_o may_v easy_o have_v be_v destroy_v may_v have_v get_v up_o her_o head_n which_o thing_n we_o have_v oftentimes_o try_v even_o in_o our_o time_n and_o he_o do_v not_o only_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v bridle_v with_o fear_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o attempt_v so_o much_o as_o they_o lust_v to_o do_v hurt_v to_o the_o church_n but_o that_o they_o be_v also_o humble_v with_o reverence_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o gospel_n 44_o and_o all_o whereas_o i_o have_v translate_v it_o join_v together_o it_o be_v word_n for_o word_n in_o saint_n luke_n into_o the_o same_o or_o into_o one_o which_o may_v be_v expound_v of_o the_o place_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o dwell_v together_o in_o one_o place_n notwithstanding_o i_o have_v rather_o understande_v it_o of_o their_o consent_n and_o agreement_n as_o he_o will_v say_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n that_o they_o have_v one_o heart_n 4.32_o act_n 4.32_o and_o so_o he_o go_v forward_o orderly_a when_o as_o he_o begin_v with_o their_o mind_n he_o add_v afterward_o their_o bountifulness_n as_o a_o fruit_n proceed_v thence_o therefore_o he_o give_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o they_o be_v right_o join_v together_o with_o brotherlie_a love_n among_o themselves_o and_o that_o they_o do_v in_o deed_n declare_v the_o same_o because_o the_o rich_a man_n do_v sell_v their_o good_n that_o they_o may_v help_v the_o poor_a and_o this_o be_v a_o singular_a example_n of_o love_n and_o therefore_o do_v luke_n record_n the_o same_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o must_v relieve_v the_o poverty_n of_o our_o brethren_n with_o our_o plenty_n but_o this_o place_n have_v need_n of_o a_o sound_a exposition_n because_o of_o fantastical_a spirit_n which_o do_v feign_v a_o communality_n or_o participation_n together_o of_o god_n whereby_o all_o policy_n or_o civil_a government_n be_v take_v away_o as_o in_o this_o age_n the_o anabaptist_n have_v rage_v because_o they_o think_v there_o be_v no_o church_n unless_o all_o man_n good_n be_v put_v and_o gather_v together_o as_o it_o be_v in_o one_o heap_n that_o they_o may_v all_o one_o with_o another_o take_v thereof_o wherefore_o we_o must_v in_o this_o point_n beware_v of_o two_o extreme_n for_o many_o under_o colour_n of_o policy_n do_v keep_v close_a and_o conceal_v whatsoever_o they_o have_v they_o defraud_v the_o poor_a and_o they_o think_v that_o they_o be_v twice_o righteous_a so_o they_o take_v away_o no_o other_o man_n good_n othersome_a be_v carry_v into_o the_o contrary_a error_n because_o they_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n
other_o unto_o the_o like_a rebellion_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o circumcise_v it_o be_v so_o indeed_o for_o paul_n teach_v that_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n for_o these_o sentence_n be_v general_a with_o he_o 7.19_o ●_o cor._n 7.19_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o again_o we_o be_v circumcise_v by_o baptism_n in_o christ_n 2.11.16_o col._n 2.11.16_o not_o with_o circumcision_n make_v with_o hand_n again_o let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o drink_v or_o in_o choice_n of_o feast_n which_o be_v shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v 10.25_o ●_o cor._n 10.25_o but_o the_o body_n be_v in_o christ_n again_o whatsoever_o come_v into_o the_o shambles_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v set_v before_o you_o that_o eat_v ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n again_o be_v not_o enwrap_v again_o in_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n see_v that_o he_o speak_v thus_o every_o where_n without_o exception_n 5.1_o gal._n 5.1_o he_o free_v the_o jew_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o lest_o i_o stand_v too_o long_o upon_o this_o one_o place_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a where_o he_o compare_v the_o law_n to_o a_o tutor_n under_o which_o the_o old_a church_n be_v as_o in_o the_o childhood_n thereof_o but_o now_o know_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v grow_v up_o that_o it_o may_v be_v free_a from_o ceremony_n in_o that_o place_n he_o speak_v undoutedlie_o both_o of_o the_o jew_n &_o gentile_n also_o when_o he_o say_v 2.14_o gal._n 2.14_o that_o the_o handwriting_n of_o the_o law_n which_o do_v consist_v in_o decree_n be_v blot_v out_o and_o nail_v to_o the_o cross_n by_o christ_n he_o set_v free_a the_o jew_n as_o well_o as_o the_o gentile_n from_o the_o ceremony_n which_o he_o call_v in_o that_o place_n decree_n but_o see_v that_o he_o do_v not_o precise_o reject_v ceremony_n in_o teach_v that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n do_v make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o observe_v thereof_o that_o be_v no_o revolt_n as_o the_o envious_a jew_n think_v it_o to_o be_v neither_o be_v the_o elder_n ignorant_a of_o paul_n his_o liberty_n therefore_o see_v they_o understand_v the_o matter_n very_o well_o their_o meaning_n be_v to_o have_v this_o alone_o make_v know_v to_o the_o rude_a and_o unskilful_a that_o paul_n mean_v nothing_o less_o then_o to_o persuade_v the_o jew_n to_o contemn_v the_o law_n therefore_o they_o behold_v not_o the_o bare_a matter_n but_o know_v what_o the_o common_a sort_n think_v of_o paul_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o report_n which_o go_v about_o concern_v he_o they_o seek_v to_o cure_v the_o same_o though_o i_o wot_v not_o whether_o this_o be_v more_o importunate_a than_o equal_a which_o they_o require_v at_o paul_n his_o hand_n and_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o preposterous_a the_o cruelty_n of_o man_n be_v in_o receive_v false_a report_n and_o how_o fast_o a_o false_a opinion_n once_o rash_o receive_v do_v stick_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o james_n and_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n do_v endeavour_n to_o maintain_v &_o defend_v paul_n his_o good_a report_n &_o to_o put_v away_o those_o lie_n which_o do_v hurt_v his_o estimation_n yet_o let_v they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v they_o will_v speak_v evil_a of_o paul_n unless_o peradventure_o they_o be_v too_o slack_a in_o the_o beginning_n that_o they_o may_v gratify_v their_o country_n man_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o their_o own_o man_n afterward_o 22_o the_o multitude_n must_v needs_o come_v together_o the_o verb_n be_v a_o verb_n neuter_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v the_o multitude_n must_v of_o necessity_n come_v together_o for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o a_o apostle_n of_o such_o rare_a report_n shall_v not_o come_v before_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o if_o he_o have_v eschew_v the_o light_n and_o sight_n of_o people_n the_o sinister_a suspicion_n may_v have_v be_v increase_v nevertheless_o we_o see_v how_o modest_o the_o elder_n behave_v themselves_o in_o nourish_a concord_n when_o as_o they_o prevent_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o people_n in_o time_n save_v that_o they_o bear_v too_o much_o peradventure_o with_o their_o infirmity_n in_o require_v a_o vow_n of_o paul_n but_o this_o moderation_n must_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o pastor_n be_v in_o great_a authority_n &_o yet_o that_o they_o rule_v not_o proud_o as_o lord_n neither_o despice_fw-la the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n for_o the_o distinction_n of_o order_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o peace_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v any_o cause_n of_o dissension_n 23_o do_v that_o which_o we_o say_v to_o thou_o the_o elder_n seem_v as_o i_o say_v even_o now_o to_o be_v fall_v unto_o a_o foolish_a pamper_n through_o too_o much_o love_n of_o their_o nation_n but_o the_o manifest_a judgement_n of_o that_o thing_n depend_v upon_o the_o circumstance_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o at_o this_o day_n yet_o they_o know_v they_o well_o the_o whole_a body_n almost_o do_v consist_v upon_o jew_n so_o that_o they_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v the_o offend_n of_o the_o gentile_n for_o in_o other_o region_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o departure_n because_o every_o man_n be_v wed_v to_o his_o own_o custom_n &_o will_v prescribe_v a_o law_n to_o other_o furthermore_o they_o have_v at_o jerusalem_fw-la many_o thing_n which_o may_v provoke_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n so_o that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a excuse_n if_o they_o do_v more_o slow_o forsake_v they_o and_o though_o their_o zeal_n be_v not_o void_a of_o fault_n yet_o as_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o reform_v it_o so_o it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v at_o a_o sudden_a we_o see_v how_o this_o superstition_n be_v scarce_o in_o long_a time_n pull_v from_o the_o apostle_n &_o because_o new_a disciple_n come_v daily_o unto_o the_o faith_n the_o infirmity_n be_v nourish_v in_o all_o together_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o ignorance_n be_v couple_v with_o obstinacy_n which_o the_o elder_n do_v nevertheless_o tolerate_v lest_o they_o shall_v do_v more_o hurt_n by_o use_v violent_a remedy_n i_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a whether_o they_o do_v pass_v measure_n or_o no._n have_v a_o vow_n upon_o they_o though_o these_o four_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o faithful_a yet_o their_o vow_n be_v superstitious_a whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v much_o trouble_n in_o that_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o only_o harden_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o law_n through_o long_a use_n but_o be_v also_o natural_o malipart_v &_o almost_o intractable_a though_o it_o may_v be_v that_o these_o man_n be_v as_o yet_o but_o novice_n &_o therefore_o their_o faith_n be_v yet_o but_o slender_a &_o scarce_o well_o frame_v wherefore_o the_o doctor_n do_v suffer_v they_o to_o perform_v the_o vow_n which_o they_o have_v unaduised_o make_v as_o touch_v paul_n because_o he_o make_v this_o vow_n not_o move_v thereunto_o by_o his_o own_o conscience_n but_o for_o their_o sake_n with_o who_o error_n he_o do_v bear_v the_o case_n stand_v otherwise_o with_o he_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v see_v 18.18_o sap._n 18.18_o whether_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o indifferent_a ceremony_n which_o the_o faithful_a may_v omit_v or_o keep_v at_o their_o pleasure_n it_o seem_v indeed_o to_o have_v in_o it_o certain_a thing_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o the_o end_n thereof_o be_v thanksgiving_n as_o we_o say_v before_o in_o the_o 18._o cha_n &_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o rite_n itself_o repugnant_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n 9.20_o 1._o cor._n 9.20_o paul_n do_v not_o doubt_v to_o descend_v thus_o far_o to_o make_v his_o religion_n know_v therefore_o paul_n do_v that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o elswher_o because_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o companion_n of_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o law_n as_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o law_n final_o he_o be_v make_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n that_o he_o may_v win_v all_o to_o wit_n even_o unto_o the_o altar_n so_o that_o he_o may_v pollute_v himself_o with_o no_o sacrilege_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o love_n it_o have_v not_o be_v so_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o solemn_a sacrifice_n of_o satisfaction_n but_o as_o for_o this_o part_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o consist_v in_o a_o vow_n he_o may_v do_v it_o indifferent_o so_o it_o be_v not_o do_v for_o religion_n sake_n but_o only_o to_o support_v the_o week_n but_o it_o be_v neither_o his_o intent_n to_o worship_n god_n with_o this_o rite_n neither_o be_v his_o conscience_n tie_v but_o he_o do_v freley_o submit_v himself_o to_o his_o weak_a brethren_n 24_o which_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o thou_o be_v
by_o god_n to_o be_v witness_n they_o may_v not_o give_v back_o but_o they_o must_v publish_v that_o which_o he_o have_v command_v and_o also_o the_o spirit_n they_o confirm_v their_o call_n by_o the_o effect_n for_o this_o be_v as_o a_o seal_n to_o approve_v their_o doctrine_n see_v that_o god_n give_v the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o those_o which_o believe_v for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o appear_v manifest_o by_o this_o that_o he_o allow_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o in_o that_o they_o say_v to_o those_o which_o obey_v he_o i_o refer_v it_o unto_o christ_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v those_o which_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v plentiful_o reward_v for_o their_o obedience_n therefore_o god_n will_v have_v christ_n obey_v wherefore_o even_o our_o ministry_n do_v please_v he_o in_o that_o thing_n yet_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v move_v see_v that_o we_o have_v faith_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n how_o be_v it_o say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o same_o be_v give_v after_o faith_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n of_o pprophecy_n of_o interpretation_n of_o heal_v and_o such_o like_a be_v speak_v of_o in_o this_o place_n wherewith_o god_n do_v beautify_v his_o church_n as_o paul_n say_v where_o he_o ask_v the_o galathians_n whether_o they_o receive_v the_o spirit_n by_o the_o law_n or_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n therefore_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n go_v before_o faith_n because_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o 13.12_o gal._n 3.2_o mat._n 13.12_o but_o there_o follow_v other_o grace_n afterward_o that_o we_o may_v go_v forward_o according_a to_o that_o to_o he_o that_o have_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o if_o we_o will_v be_v enrich_v ever_o now_o &_o then_o with_o new_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n let_v we_o hold_v out_o unto_o god_n the_o lap_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o reward_n wherewith_o our_o want_n of_o faith_n be_v reward_v at_o this_o day_n be_v far_o unlike_a for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v destitute_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v neither_o see_v nor_o understand_v any_o thing_n 33_o they_o be_v cut_v insunder_o the_o priest_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v thorough_o move_v though_o they_o have_v have_v heart_n of_o iron_n but_o they_o burst_v whence_o we_o gather_v that_o no_o reason_n can_v prevail_v with_o the_o reprobate_n to_o bring_v they_o unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n for_o unless_o god_n speak_v within_o the_o outward_a doctrine_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o beat_v the_o ear_n the_o apostle_n be_v able_a so_o to_o overcome_v their_o enemy_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v one_o word_n to_o say_v but_o their_o fury_n be_v so_o untamed_a and_o unbrideled_a that_o they_o do_v rather_o go_v mad_a yet_o we_o must_v therewithal_o note_v the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n because_o although_o the_o reprobate_a be_v not_o thereby_o change_v that_o they_o may_v become_v better_o yet_o it_o pierce_v into_o their_o heart_n so_o that_o it_o urge_v their_o conscience_n for_o thence_o spring_v their_o fury_n because_o they_o see_v themselves_o urge_v by_o their_o judge_n they_o will_v glad_o mock_v all_o the_o gospel_n as_o they_o attempt_v whatsoever_o they_o can_v that_o they_o may_v count_v it_o as_o nothing_o but_o there_o be_v in_o the_o same_o a_o certain_a hide_a majesty_n which_o drive_v away_o mighty_o all_o their_o delicacy_n and_o chief_o when_o they_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n to_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n then_o appear_v their_o madness_n and_o rage_n 34_o and_o a_o certain_a pharisee_fw-mi name_v gamaliel_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n precious_a to_o all_o the_o people_n rise_v in_o the_o council_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v carry_v out_o a_o little_a space_n 35_o then_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o man_n of_o israel_n take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o what_o you_o intend_v to_o do_v touch_v these_o man_n 36_o for_o before_o these_o day_n there_o arise_v one_o theudas_n say_v that_o he_o be_v some_o great_a man_n to_o who_o consent_v a_o number_n of_o man_n about_o four_o hundred_o who_o perish_v &_o they_o be_v all_o scatter_a abroad_o which_o have_v obey_v he_o and_o be_v bring_v to_o nought_o 37_o after_o he_o arise_v one_o judas_n of_o galilee_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o tribute_n and_o lead_v away_o much_o people_n after_o he_o and_o he_o likewise_o perish_v and_o all_o which_o have_v obey_v he_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o 38_o now_o therefore_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o abstain_v from_o these_o man_n and_o let_v they_o alone_o for_o if_o this_o counsel_n or_o this_o work_n be_v of_o man_n it_o shall_v come_v to_o nought_o 39_o but_o if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n you_o can_v destroy_v it_o lest_o at_o any_o time_n you_o be_v find_v to_o fight_v with_o god_n 34_o luke_n show_v now_o after_o what_o manner_n god_n bring_v to_o nought_o that_o fury_n of_o the_o wicked_a they_o be_v purpose_v to_o put_v the_o apostle_n to_o death_n gamaliel_n stand_v up_o amid_o they_o to_o break_v off_o that_o mad_a consultation_n furthermore_o he_o note_v the_o circumstance_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v how_o it_o can_v be_v that_o one_o man_n can_v prevail_v so_o much_o against_o so_o many_o he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o pharisee_n which_o sect_n be_v in_o great_a estimation_n as_o we_o know_v he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o price_n or_o honour_v amongst_o the_o people_n and_o they_o fear_v the_o people_n hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v the_o more_o afraid_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o his_o mind_n so_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o set_v sudden_a terror_n against_o his_o enemy_n when_o they_o look_v not_o for_o they_o to_o stay_v their_o violence_n furthermore_o gamaliel_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o go_v aside_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o embolden_v by_o his_o word_n for_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o he_o speak_v thus_o because_o he_o do_v allow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o that_o he_o mean_v to_o defend_v the_o same_o but_o because_o he_o see_v all_o the_o rest_n inflame_v with_o fury_n he_o be_v a_o man_n moderate_a and_o courteous_a do_v with_o sober_a speech_n temper_v that_o excess_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v all_o thing_n well_o this_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n be_v unmeete_a for_o a_o wise_a man_n i_o know_v that_o many_o count_v it_o as_o a_o oracle_n but_o it_o appear_v sufficient_o hereby_o that_o they_o judge_v amiss_o because_o by_o this_o mean_n man_n shall_v abstain_v from_o all_o punishment_n neither_o be_v any_o wicked_a fact_n any_o long_a to_o be_v correct_v yea_o all_o help_n of_o life_n be_v to_o be_v refuse_v which_o we_o can_v prolong_v one_o moment_n both_o thing_n be_v true_a that_o no_o endeavour_n of_o man_n can_v destroy_v that_o which_o be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o that_o which_o be_v of_o man_n be_v not_o so_o strong_a that_o it_o can_v stand_v but_o he_o gather_v amiss_o hence_o that_o man_n must_v sit_v still_o and_o say_v nothing_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o must_v rather_o mark_v what_o god_n command_v we_o to_o do_v and_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o restrain_v wickedness_n to_o this_o end_n have_v he_o appoint_v magistrate_n and_o arm_v they_o with_o the_o sword_n to_o this_o end_n have_v he_o set_v elder_n over_o his_o church_n to_o bring_v the_o froward_a in_o order_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o suffer_v sin_n licentious_o to_o rage_n without_o punishment_n therefore_o it_o be_v gather_v amiss_o that_o we_o must_v refrain_v from_o punish_v because_o god_n be_v sufficient_a of_o himself_o to_o take_v away_o evil_n although_o his_o whole_a counsel_n be_v such_o gamaliel_n will_v the_o scribe_n and_o elder_n to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o make_v not_o open_a war_n against_o god_n and_o he_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v touch_v a_o doubtful_a matter_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v no_o certainty_n from_o the_o foundation_n when_o as_o he_o doubt_v in_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o cause_n neither_o dare_v set_v down_o whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_a but_o do_v only_o command_v to_o defer_v it_o for_o a_o time_n until_o the_o cause_n appear_v more_o plain_o in_o sum_n gamaliel_n fet_v a_o evil_a consequent_a from_o true_a ground_n because_o he_o apply_v that_o amiss_o unto_o the_o external_a office_n and_o manner_n of_o do_v which_o ought_v to_o serve_v for_o faith_n only_o on_o the_o other_o side_n let_v this_o be_v our_o logic_n that_o which_o be_v of_o god_n must_v needs_o stand_v though_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n say_v nay_o therefore_o faith_n must_v stand_v without_o all_o fear_n against_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o
the_o apostle_n do_v consider_v what_o particular_a thing_n their_o calling_n have_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o shall_v keep_v their_o stand_n see_v the_o wolf_n do_v invade_v the_o sheepefolde_a the_o rigour_n of_o tertullian_n and_o such_o like_a be_v too_o great_a who_o do_v deny_v indifferent_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o fly_v for_o fear_n of_o persecution_n august_n say_v better_a who_o give_v leave_v to_o fly_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o church_n be_v destitute_a of_o their_o pastor_n be_v not_o betray_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o enemy_n this_o be_v sure_o the_o best_a moderation_n which_o bear_v neither_o too_o much_o with_o the_o flesh_n neither_o drive_v those_o headlong_a to_o death_n who_o may_v lawful_o save_v their_o life_n let_v he_o that_o be_v dispose_v read_v the_o 180._o ep._n to_o honoratus_n that_o i_o may_v return_v to_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o have_v be_v scatter_v here_o and_o there_o with_o fear_n of_o persecution_n even_o at_o the_o beginning_n all_o man_n may_v have_v right_o call_v they_o hireling_n how_o hurtful_a and_o filthy_a have_v the_o forsake_v of_o the_o place_n be_v at_o the_o present_a time_n how_o great_o will_v it_o have_v discourage_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n what_o great_a hurt_n shall_v they_o have_v do_v with_o their_o example_n among_o the_o posterity_n it_o shall_v sometime_o so_o fall_v out_o in_o deed_n that_o the_o pastor_n may_v also_o fly_v that_o be_v if_o they_o invade_v he_o alone_o if_o the_o lay_v waste_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o fear_v if_o he_o be_v absent_a but_o and_o if_o both_o his_o flock_n and_o he_o have_v to_o encounter_v with_o the_o adversary_n he_o be_v a_o treacherous_a forsaker_n of_o his_o office_n if_o he_o stand_v not_o stoutlye_o to_o it_o even_o until_o the_o end_n private_a person_n have_v great_a liberty_n 2_o they_o dressed_z steeven_n luke_n show_v that_o even_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o persecution_n the_o godly_a be_v not_o so_o discourage_v but_o be_v always_o zealous_a they_o do_v those_o duty_n which_o do_v belong_v to_o godliness_n burial_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o small_a importance_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v foreslowe_v the_o same_o they_o bring_v themselves_o in_o no_o small_a hassarde_n of_o life_n and_o as_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n do_v declare_v that_o they_o contemn_v death_n valiant_o so_o again_o we_o gather_v thereby_o that_o they_o be_v careful_a to_o do_v this_o thing_n not_o without_o great_a and_o urgent_a cause_n for_o this_o serve_v great_o to_o exercise_v their_o faith_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o wild_a beast_n in_o who_o christ_n have_v triumph_v noble_o according_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o gospel_n neither_o can_v they_o live_v to_o christ_n unless_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v gather_v unto_o steeven_n into_o the_o society_n of_o death_n therefore_o the_o care_n they_o have_v to_o bury_v the_o martyr_n be_v unto_o they_o a_o meditation_n unto_o invincible_a constancy_n of_o profess_v the_o faith_n therefore_o they_o seek_v not_o in_o a_o superfluous_a matter_n with_o a_o unaduised_a zeal_n to_o provoke_v their_o adversary_n although_o that_o general_a reason_n which_o ought_v always_o and_o every_o where_o to_o be_v of_o force_n among_o the_o godly_a be_v undouted_o of_o great_a weight_n with_o they_o for_o the_o rite_n of_o bury_v do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o end_n wherefore_o this_o be_v always_o count_v cruel_a barbarism_n to_o suffer_v body_n to_o lie_v unbury_v willing_o profane_a man_n do_v not_o know_v why_o they_o shall_v count_v the_o right_n of_o burial_n so_o holy_a but_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o end_n thereof_o to_o wit_n that_o those_o which_o remain_v alive_a may_v know_v that_o the_o body_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o to_o a_o prison_n until_o they_o be_v raise_v up_o thence_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o duty_n be_v profitable_a rather_o for_o those_o which_o be_v alive_a than_o for_o those_o which_o be_v dead_a although_o it_o be_v also_o a_o point_n of_o our_o humanity_n to_o give_v due_a honour_n to_o those_o body_n to_o which_o we_o know_v bless_v immortality_n to_o be_v promise_v they_o make_v great_a lamentation_n luke_n do_v also_o commend_v their_o profession_n of_o godliness_n and_o faith_n in_o their_o lamentation_n for_o a_o doleful_a and_o unprosperous_a end_n cause_v man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o forsake_v those_o cause_n wherein_o they_o be_v delight_v before_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n these_o man_n declare_v by_o their_o mourning_n that_o they_o be_v not_o what_o terrify_v with_o the_o death_n of_o stephen_n from_o stand_v stout_o in_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o cause_n consider_v therewithal_o what_o great_a loss_n god_n church_n suffer_v by_o the_o death_n of_o one_o man_n and_o we_o must_v reject_v that_o foolish_a philosophy_n which_o will_v man_n to_o be_v altogether_o blockish_a that_o they_o may_v be_v wise_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o stoic_n be_v void_a of_o common_a sense_n who_o will_v have_v a_o man_n to_o be_v with_o out_o all_o affection_n certain_a mad_a fellow_n will_v glad_o bring_v in_o the_o same_o dote_n into_o the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o although_o they_o require_v a_o heart_n of_o iron_n of_o other_o man_n there_o be_v nothing_o soft_a or_o more_o effeminate_a than_o they_o they_o can_v abide_v that_o other_o man_n shall_v shed_v one_o tear_n if_o any_o thing_n fall_v out_o otherwise_o than_o they_o will_v wish_v they_o make_v no_o end_n of_o mourning_n god_n do_v thus_o punish_v their_o arrogancy_n je_o that_o i_o may_v so_o term_v it_o see_v that_o he_o set_v they_o to_o be_v laugh_v at_o even_o by_o boy_n but_o let_v we_o know_v that_o those_o affection_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o man_n nature_n be_v of_o themselves_o no_o more_o corrupt_a than_o the_o author_n himself_o but_o that_o they_o be_v first_o to_o be_v esteem_v according_a to_o the_o cause_n second_o if_o they_o keep_v a_o mean_a and_o moderation_n sure_o that_o man_n which_o deni_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o rejoice_v over_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v more_o like_o a_o block_n than_o a_o man_n therefore_o we_o may_v no_o less_o lawful_o sorrow_n when_o they_o be_v take_v away_o and_o lest_o i_o pass_v the_o compass_n of_o this_o present_a place_n paul_n do_v not_o altogether_o forbid_v man_n mourn_v when_o any_o of_o their_o friend_n be_v take_v away_o by_o death_n but_o he_o will_v have_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o unbeliever_n because_o hope_v aught_o to_o be_v to_o they_o a_o comfort_n and_o a_o remedy_n against_o unpatience_n for_o the_o begin_n of_o death_n cause_v we_o to_o sorrow_n for_o good_a cause_n but_o because_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v life_n restore_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n we_o have_v that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o appease_v our_o sorrow_n in_o like_a sort_n when_o we_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o church_n be_v deprive_v of_o rare_a and_o excellent_a man_n there_o be_v good_a cause_n of_o sorrow_n only_o we_o must_v seek_v such_o comfort_n as_o may_v correct_v excess_n 3_o but_o saul_n we_o must_v note_v two_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n how_o great_a the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o adversary_n be_v and_o how_o wonderful_a the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v who_o vouchsafe_v to_o make_v paul_n a_o pastor_n of_o so_o cruel_a a_o wolf_n for_o that_o desire_n to_o lay_v waste_v the_o church_n wherewith_o he_o be_v incense_v do_v seem_v to_o cut_v away_o all_o hope_n therefore_o his_o conversion_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o excellent_a afterward_o and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o this_o punishment_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o by_o god_n after_o that_o he_o have_v conspire_v to_o put_v stephen_n to_o death_n together_o with_o the_o other_o wicked_a man_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o ringleader_n of_o cruelty_n for_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o punish_v sin_n more_o sharp_o in_o the_o elect_n than_o in_o the_o reprobate_n 4_o and_o they_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o luke_n declare_v in_o this_o place_n also_o that_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o the_o scatter_v abroad_o of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v bring_v many_o unto_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n thus_o do_v the_o lord_n use_v to_o bring_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n &_o life_n out_o of_o death_n for_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v hear_v heretofore_o in_o one_o place_n only_o do_v now_o sound_a everywhere_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o example_n that_o we_o must_v
he_o offer_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o purge_v man_n sin_n that_o he_o be_v punish_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n &_o that_o he_o go_v down_o even_o unto_o the_o very_a hell_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v we_o unto_o heaven_n have_v deliver_v we_o from_o destruction_n in_o sum_n this_o place_n teach_v plain_o how_o man_n be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n how_o they_o obtain_v righteousness_n how_o they_o come_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o satan_n and_o loose_v from_o the_o yoke_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v brief_a whence_o they_o must_v fetch_v all_o part_n of_o their_o salvation_n notwithstanding_o i_o will_v only_o expound_v those_o thing_n which_o luke_n here_o cit_v and_o there_o be_v in_o deed_n two_o member_n in_o the_o former_a he_o teach_v that_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v redeem_v the_o church_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o break_v that_o he_o appear_v like_a to_o a_o man_n which_o be_v cast_v down_o &_o past_a hope_n second_o he_o affirm_v that_o his_o death_n shall_v give_v life_n &_o that_o there_o shall_v a_o singular_a triumph_n issue_n out_o of_o great_a despair_n whereas_o he_o compare_v christ_n to_o a_o lamb_n which_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v lead_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o to_o a_o sheep_n which_o offer_v herself_o meek_o to_o be_v shear_v his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v voluntary_a and_o sure_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o appease_v god_n wrath_n in_o that_o he_o show_v himself_o obedient_a he_o speak_v in_o deed_n before_o pilate_n but_o not_o to_o save_v his_o life_n 18.34.36_o john_n 18.34.36_o but_o rather_o that_o he_o may_v willing_o offer_v himself_o to_o die_v as_o he_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o father_n and_o so_o may_v bring_v that_o punishment_n upon_o himself_o which_o be_v prepare_v for_o us._n therefore_o the_o prophet_n teach_v both_o thing_n that_o christ_n must_v needs_o have_v suffer_v that_o he_o may_v purchase_v life_n for_o we_o and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o suffer_v death_n willing_o that_o he_o may_v blot_v out_o the_o stubbornness_n of_o man_n by_o his_o obedience_n and_o hence_o must_v we_o gather_v a_o exhortation_n unto_o godliness_n as_o peter_n do_v but_o that_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o i_o have_v already_o touch_v be_v former_a in_o order_n 33_o in_o his_o humility_n his_o judgement_n the_o eunuch_n have_v either_o the_o greek_a volume_n or_o else_o luke_n do_v set_v down_o the_o read_n which_o be_v then_o use_v as_o he_o use_v to_o do_v the_o prophet_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v exalt_v out_o of_o sorrow_n and_o judgement_n by_o which_o word_n he_o signify_v a_o wonderful_a victory_n which_o immediate_o ensue_v his_o cast_n down_o for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v oppress_v with_o death_n there_o can_v nothing_o have_v be_v hope_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n the_o prophet_n may_v establish_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n after_o that_o he_o have_v describe_v he_o to_o be_v strike_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v slay_v he_o put_v upon_o he_o a_o new_a person_n now_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o death_n as_o a_o conqueror_n &_o our_o of_o the_o very_a hell_n be_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a life_n i_o know_v in_o deed_n that_o this_o place_n be_v diverse_o expound_v some_o there_o be_v which_o understande_v by_o this_o that_o he_o be_v carry_v from_o the_o prison_n to_o the_o cross_n other_o some_o there_o be_v who_o think_v that_o to_o be_v take_v away_o do_v signify_v as_o much_o as_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o nought_o and_o indeed_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n lacham_n be_v doubtful_a as_o be_v also_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n airesthai_n but_o he_o which_o shall_v thorough_o weigh_v the_o text_n shall_v agree_v with_o i_o in_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v that_o he_o pass_v now_o from_o that_o doleful_a and_o unseemly_a sight_n which_o he_o have_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n unto_o the_o new_a beginning_n of_o unlooked_a for_o glory_n therefore_o the_o greek_a interpretation_n differ_v not_o much_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o matter_n for_o christ_n judgement_n be_v exalt_v in_o his_o humility_n or_o cast_v down_o because_o at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v cast_v down_o and_o oppress_v the_o father_n maintain_v his_o cause_n after_o this_o sort_n judgement_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n as_o in_o many_o other_o for_o right_a but_o it_o signify_v condemnation_n in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n for_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o after_o that_o christ_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o great_a strait_n and_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o a_o condemn_a and_o lose_v man_n he_o shall_v be_v lift_v up_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o father_n therefore_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n be_v that_o christ_n must_v first_o have_v suffer_v death_n before_o the_o father_n shall_v exalt_v he_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o doctrine_n must_v be_v translate_v unto_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o all_o the_o godly_a aught_o wonderful_o to_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o they_o be_v not_o swallow_v uppe_o of_o death_n but_o when_o god_n appear_v to_o be_v the_o revenger_n of_o he_o he_o do_v not_o only_o restore_v they_o to_o life_n but_o also_o get_v to_o they_o excellent_a triumph_n of_o many_o death_n as_o christ_n do_v triumph_v most_o glorious_o upon_o the_o cross_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n make_v mention_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o collossian_o his_o generation_n after_o that_o the_o prophet_n have_v set_v forth_o the_o victorious_a death_n of_o christ_n he_o add_v now_o that_o his_o victory_n shall_v not_o last_v only_o for_o a_o small_a time_n but_o shall_v go_v beyond_o all_o number_n of_o year_n for_o the_o exclamation_n of_o the_o prophet_n import_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v deny_v that_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n can_v be_v express_v by_o the_o tongue_n of_o man_n but_o interpreter_n have_v wrest_v this_o place_n miserable_o whereas_o the_o old_a writer_n have_v endeavour_v hereby_o to_o prove_v the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n against_o arrius_n it_o be_v too_o far_o dissent_v from_o the_o prophet_n mind_n chrysostome_n his_o exposition_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n true_a who_o refer_v it_o unto_o the_o humane_a generation_n neither_o do_v they_o understand_v the_o prophet_n his_o meaning_n which_o suppose_v that_o he_o inveigh_v against_o the_o man_n of_o that_o age_n othersome_a think_v better_a who_o take_v it_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n save_v only_o that_o they_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o word_n generation_n which_o they_o think_v do_v signify_v a_o posterity_n or_o issue_n but_o the_o word_n dor_n which_o the_o prophet_n use_v signify_v among_o the_o hebrew_n a_o age_n or_o the_o continuance_n of_o man_n life_n therefore_o undoubted_o this_o be_v the_o prophet_n meaning_n that_o christ_n his_o life_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o when_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v once_o deliver_v by_o his_o father_n grace_n from_o death_n although_o this_o life_n which_o be_v without_o end_n appertain_v unto_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o christ_n rise_v not_o that_o he_o may_v live_v for_o himself_o but_o for_o us._n therefore_o he_o extoll_v now_o in_o the_o member_n the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o that_o victory_n which_o he_o place_v in_o the_o head_n wherefore_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a may_v conceive_v sure_a hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n out_o of_o this_o place_n second_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v rather_o avouch_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n because_o his_o life_n be_v take_v from_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v to_o look_v too_o to_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a reason_n that_o christ_n do_v reign_v with_o such_o renoun_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n because_o he_o be_v cut_v off_o for_o who_o can_v believe_v that_o death_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o life_n but_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n that_o hell_n shall_v be_v a_o ladder_n whereby_o christ_n shall_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o reproach_n shall_v be_v unto_o he_o a_o passage_n into_o life_n that_o the_o joyful_a brightness_n of_o salvation_n shall_v appear_v out_o of_o the_o horror_n and_o darkness_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o bless_a immortality_n shall_v flow_v from_o the_o deep_a pit_n of_o death_n because_o he_o humble_v himself_o therefore_o the_o father_n exalt_v he_o 2.10_o phil._n 2.10_o that_o every_o knee_n may_v bow_v before_o he_o etc._n etc._n now_o must_v we_o bethink_v ourselves_o what_o fellowship_n we_o
have_v no_o confirmation_n by_o baptism_n for_o they_o reason_v thus_o the_o eunuch_n be_v command_v to_o bring_v perfect_a faith_n unto_o baptism_n therefore_o there_o can_v nothing_o be_v add_v but_o the_o scripture_n take_v the_o whole_a heart_n oftentimes_o for_o a_o sincere_a &_o unfeigned_a heart_n who_o opposite_a be_v a_o double_a heart_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v imagine_v that_o they_o believe_v perfect_o who_o believe_v with_o the_o whole_a heart_n see_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o weak_a &_o faint_a faith_n in_o he_o who_o shall_v notwithstanding_o have_v a_o sound_a mind_n and_o a_o mind_n free_a from_o all_o hyporcisie_n thus_o must_v we_o take_v that_o which_o david_n say_v that_o he_o love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n philip_n have_v in_o deed_n baptize_v the_o samaritan_n before_o &_o yet_o he_o know_v that_o they_o be_v yet_o far_o from_o the_o mark_n therefore_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a heart_n be_v that_o which_o have_v living_n root_n in_o the_o heart_n do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o desire_v to_o increase_v daily_a i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n chr●st_n as_o baptism_n be_v ground_v in_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o truth_n and_o force_n thereof_o be_v contain_v there_o so_o the_o eunuch_n set_v christ_n alone_a before_o his_o eye_n the_o eunuch_n know_v before_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n who_o have_v make_v the_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n who_o give_v the_o law_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n which_o separate_v one_o people_n from_o the_o other_o nation_n who_o promise_v christ_n through_o who_o he_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o the_o world_n now_o he_o confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v that_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n under_o which_o title_n he_o comprehend_v brief_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o perfect_a faith_n whereof_o philip_n speak_v of_o late_a which_o receive_v christ_n both_o as_o he_o be_v promise_v in_o time_n past_a &_o also_o show_v at_o length_n &_o that_o with_o the_o earnest_a affection_n of_o the_o heart_n as_o paul_n will_v not_o have_v this_o faith_n to_o be_v feign_v whosoever_o have_v not_o this_o when_o he_o be_v grow_v up_o in_o vain_a do_v he_o boast_v of_o the_o baptism_n of_o his_o infancy_n for_o to_o this_o end_n do_v christ_n admit_v infant_n by_o baptism_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o capacity_n of_o their_o age_n shall_v suffer_v they_o may_v addict_v themselves_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n and_o that_o be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o may_v comprehend_v with_o the_o understanding_n of_o faith_n his_o power_n which_o baptism_n do_v prefigure_v 38_o they_o go_v down_o into_o the_o water_n here_o we_o see_v the_o rite_n use_v among_o the_o man_n of_o old_a time_n in_o baptism_n for_o they_o put_v all_o the_o body_n into_o the_o water_n now_o the_o use_n be_v this_o that_o the_o minister_n do_v only_o sprinkle_v the_o body_n or_o the_o head_n but_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o stand_v so_o much_o about_o such_o a_o small_a difference_n of_o a_o ceremony_n that_o we_o shall_v therefore_o divide_v the_o church_n or_o trouble_v the_o same_o with_o brawl_n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o fight_v even_o a_o hundred_o time_n to_o death_n for_o the_o ceremony_n itself_o of_o baptism_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v deliver_v we_o by_o christ_n than_o that_o we_o shall_v suffer_v the_o same_o to_o be_v take_v from_o us._n but_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o have_v as_o well_o a_o testimony_n of_o our_o wash_n as_o of_o newness_n of_o life_n in_o the_o sign_n of_o water_n forasmuch_o as_o christ_n represent_v unto_o we_o his_o blood_n in_o the_o water_n as_o in_o a_o glass_n that_o we_o may_v fetch_v our_o cleanness_n thence_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v fashion_v again_o by_o his_o spirit_n that_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n we_o may_v live_v to_o righteousness_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o want_v nothing_o which_o make_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o baptism_n wherefore_o the_o church_n do_v grant_v liberty_n to_o herself_o since_o the_o beginning_n to_o change_v the_o rite_n somewhat_o except_v this_o substance_n for_o some_o dip_v they_o thrice_o some_o but_o once_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o straight_o lace_v in_o matter_n which_o be_v of_o no_o such_o weight_n so_o that_o that_o external_a pomp_n do_v no_o whit_n pollute_v the_o simple_a institution_n of_o christ_n 39_o when_o they_o be_v come_v up_o to_o the_o end_n luke_n may_v at_o length_n conclude_v his_o speech_n concern_v the_o eunuch_n he_o say_v that_o philip_n be_v catch_v away_o out_o of_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o be_v of_o no_o small_a weight_n to_o confirm_v he_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o see_v that_o that_o man_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o by_o god_n like_a to_o a_o angel_n and_o that_o he_o vanish_v away_o before_o he_o can_v offer_v he_o any_o reward_n for_o his_o pain_n whence_o he_o may_v gather_v that_o it_o be_v no_o gainful_a insinuation_n see_v that_o he_o be_v vanish_v away_o before_o he_o have_v one_o half_a penny_n give_v he_o whereas_o philip_n have_v no_o reward_n at_o the_o eunuch_n hand_n let_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n learn_v hereby_o to_o serve_v he_o free_o or_o rather_o let_v they_o so_o serve_v man_n for_o nothing_o that_o they_o hope_v for_o a_o reward_n from_o heaven_n the_o lord_n grant_v leave_v in_o deed_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o receive_v a_o reward_n at_o their_o hand_n who_o they_o teach_v but_o he_o forbid_v they_o therewithal_o to_o be_v hireling_n which_o labour_n for_o lucre_n sake_n 10.12.23_o 1._o cor._n 9.9_o joh._n 10.12.23_o for_o this_o must_v be_v the_o mark_n whereat_o they_o must_v shoot_v to_o gain_v the_o man_n themselves_o too_o god_n rejoice_v faith_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n bring_v forth_o this_o fruit_n always_o of_o themselves_o for_o what_o true_a matter_n of_o joy_n can_v be_v invent_v than_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o set_v open_a unto_o we_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o mercy_n but_o pour_v out_o his_o heart_n into_o we_o that_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v &_o give_v we_o himself_o in_o his_o son_n that_o we_o may_v want_v nothing_o to_o perfect_a felicity_n the_o heaven_n begin_v to_o look_v clear_a and_o the_o earth_n begin_v to_o be_v quiet_a then_o the_o conscience_n be_v then_o deliver_v from_o the_o doleful_a and_o horrible_a feel_n of_o god_n wrath_n be_v loose_v from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o satan_n escape_v out_o of_o the_o darkness_n of_o death_n behold_v the_o light_n of_o life_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o solemn_a thing_n among_o the_o prophet_n to_o exhort_v we_o to_o be_v joyful_a and_o to_o triumph_n so_o often_o as_o they_o be_v about_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o those_o man_n who_o mind_n be_v possess_v with_o the_o vain_a joy_n of_o the_o world_n can_v lift_v up_o themselves_o unto_o this_o spiritual_a joy_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o despise_v the_o world_n and_o all_o vain_a delight_n thereof_o that_o christ_n may_v make_v we_o merry_a in_o deed_n 40_o he_o be_v find_v at_o azotus_n it_o be_v well_o know_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o josua_n cha_n 11._o 11.22_o josua_n 11.22_o that_o azotus_n be_v one_o of_o the_o city_n out_o of_o which_o the_o son_n of_o enack_n can_v not_o be_v expel_v it_o be_v distant_a from_o ascalon_n almost_o 200._o furlong_n the_o hebrew_n call_v it_o asdod_n thither_o be_v philip_n carry_v there_o begin_v he_o to_o take_v his_o journey_n on_o foot_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n sow_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n wheresoever_o he_o become_v this_o be_v sure_o rare_a &_o wonderful_a stoutness_n that_o he_o spread_v the_o name_n of_o godliness_n in_o his_o journey_n and_o whereas_o luke_n say_v express_o that_o he_o preach_v in_o all_o city_n until_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n and_o do_v not_o declare_v that_o he_o return_v to_o samaria_n we_o may_v thereby_o conjecture_v that_o he_o stay_v at_o caesarea_n for_o a_o time_n and_o yet_o i_o leave_v this_o indifferent_a chap._n ix_o 1_o and_o saul_n yet_o breathe_v out_o threaten_n and_o slaughter_n against_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v unto_o the_o high_a priest_n 2_o require_v epistle_n of_o he_o to_o damascus_n unto_o the_o synagogue_n that_o if_o he_o shall_v find_v any_o of_o this_o sect_n whether_o they_o be_v man_n or_o woman_n he_o may_v carry_v they_o bind_v to_o jerusalem_n 3_o and_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n it_o happen_v that_o he_o draw_v near_o to_o damascus_n and_o sudden_o there_o shine_v a_o light_n about_o he_o from_o heaven_n 4_o and_o fall_v flat_a to_o the_o ground_n he_o hear_v
a_o voice_n say_v to_o he_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o 5_o and_o he_o say_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v it_o be_v hard_a for_o thou_o to_o kick_v against_o prick_n 1_o and_o saul_n luke_n set_v down_o in_o this_o place_n a_o noble_a history_n and_o a_o history_n full_o well_o worthy_a to_o be_v remember_v concern_v the_o conversion_n of_o paul_n after_o what_o sort_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o bring_v he_o under_o and_o make_v he_o subject_a to_o his_o commandment_n when_o he_o rage_v like_o a_o untamed_a beast_n but_o also_o how_o he_o make_v he_o another_o &_o a_o new_a man_n but_o because_o luke_n set_v down_o all_o thing_n in_o order_n as_o in_o a_o famous_a work_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v more_o convenient_a to_o follow_v his_o text_n that_o all_o that_o may_v come_v in_o order_n whatsoever_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o breathe_v out_o threaten_n &_o slaughter_n as_o yet_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o after_o that_o his_o hand_n be_v once_o imbrue_v with_o innocent_a blood_n he_o proceed_v in_o like_a cruelty_n &_o be_v always_o a_o furious_a &_o bloody_a enemy_n to_o the_o church_n after_o that_o he_o have_v once_o make_v that_o entrance_n whereof_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o death_n of_o steeven_n for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v the_o more_o incredible_a that_o he_o can_v be_v so_o sudden_o tame_v and_o whereas_o such_o a_o cruel_a wolf_n be_v not_o only_o turn_v into_o a_o sheep_n but_o do_v also_o put_v on_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o shepherd_n the_o wonderful_a hand_n of_o god_n do_v show_v itself_o therein_o manifest_o 2_o and_o luke_n describe_v therewithal_o that_o he_o be_v furnish_v with_o weapon_n and_o power_n to_o do_v hurt_v when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v obtain_v letter_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v all_o those_o bind_v to_o jerusalem_n who_o he_o shall_v find_v profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o woman_n that_o it_o may_v the_o better_o appear_v how_o desirous_a he_o be_v to_o shed_v blood_n who_o have_v no_o respect_n of_o sex_n who_o even_o arm_a enemy_n be_v wont_a to_o spare_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o war_n therefore_o he_o set_v forth_o before_o we_o a_o fierce_a and_o cruel_a beast_n who_o have_v not_o only_a liberty_n give_v he_o to_o rage_n but_o have_v also_o his_o power_n increase_v to_o devour_v and_o destroy_v godly_a man_n as_o if_o a_o mad_a man_n have_v have_v a_o sword_n put_v into_o his_o hand_n whereas_o i_o have_v translate_v it_o sect_n luke_n have_v way_n which_o metaphor_n be_v common_a enough_o in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o paul_n his_o purpose_n be_v quite_o to_o put_v out_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o destroy_v all_o the_o godly_a cruel_o 3_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n in_o crave_v epistle_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n he_o run_v headlong_o against_o christ_n willing_o and_o now_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o obey_v whether_o he_o will_v or_o no._n this_o be_v sure_o the_o most_o excellent_a mercy_n of_o god_n in_o that_o that_o man_n be_v reclaim_v unto_o salvation_n contrary_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o mind_n who_o so_o great_a a_o heat_n carry_v headlong_o into_o destruction_n whereas_o the_o lord_n suffer_v he_o to_o receive_v letter_n and_o to_o come_v near_o to_o the_o city_n hereby_o we_o see_v how_o well_o he_o know_v the_o very_a instant_n of_o time_n to_o do_v every_o thing_n in_o due_a time_n he_o can_v have_v prevent_v he_o soon_o if_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o he_o so_o to_o do_v that_o he_o may_v deliver_v the_o godly_a from_o fear_n and_o carefulness_n but_o he_o set_v out_o his_o benefit_n more_o thereby_o in_o that_o he_o ty_v the_o jaw_n of_o the_o greedy_a wolf_n even_o when_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o enter_v the_o sheepfolde_a also_o we_o know_v that_o man_n stubborness_n increase_v more_o and_o more_o by_o go_v forward_o wherefore_o the_o conversion_n of_o paul_n be_v so_o much_o the_o hard_a forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v already_o make_v more_o obstinate_a by_o continue_v his_o fury_n shine_v about_o he_o because_o it_o be_v none_o easy_a matter_n to_o pull_v down_o so_o great_a pride_n to_o break_v such_o a_o lofty_a courage_n to_o pacify_v such_o a_o blind_a heat_n of_o wicked_a zeal_n and_o final_o to_o bridle_v a_o most_o unbrideled_a beast_n christ_n must_v needs_o have_v show_v some_o sign_n of_o his_o majesty_n whereby_o paul_n may_v perceive_v that_o he_o have_v to_o do_v with_o god_n himself_o &_o not_o with_o any_o mortal_a man_n although_o there_o be_v some_o respect_n have_v of_o humble_v he_o because_o he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o have_v christ_n to_o accustom_v he_o by_o and_o by_o to_o obey_v by_o lay_v upon_o his_o neck_n the_o meek_a and_o sweet_a yoke_n of_o his_o spirit_n &_o he_o be_v scarce_o capable_a of_o so_o great_a gentleness_n until_o his_o cruelty_n may_v be_v break_v man_n sense_n can_v comprehend_v the_o divine_a glory_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v but_o as_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o put_v upon_o he_o form_n wherein_o he_o do_v show_v himself_o so_o christ_n do_v now_o declare_v and_o make_v manifest_a his_o divinity_n to_o paul_n &_o show_v some_o token_n of_o his_o presence_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o terrify_v paul_n for_o although_o the_o godly_a be_v afraid_a and_o tremble_v at_o the_o see_v of_o god_n yet_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o paul_n be_v far_o more_o afraid_a when_o as_o he_o perceive_v that_o the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v full_a against_o he_o 4_o and_o therefore_o luke_n say_v that_o he_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n for_o what_o other_o thing_n can_v befall_v man_n but_o that_o he_o must_v lie_v prostrate_a and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o when_o he_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o present_a feel_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o bring_n down_o of_o paul_n that_o he_o may_v become_v apt_a to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v despise_v so_o long_o as_o he_o sit_v hauty_o upon_o his_o horse_n saul_n saul_n luke_n compare_v the_o light_n which_o shine_v round_o about_o paul_n to_o lightning_n though_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o lightning_n do_v fly_v in_o the_o air_n and_o this_o voice_n which_o christ_n do_v send_v out_o to_o beat_v down_o his_o pride_n may_v full_o well_o be_v call_v a_o lightning_n or_o thunderbolt_n because_o it_o do_v not_o only_o strike_v he_o and_o make_v he_o astonish_v but_o do_v quite_o kill_v he_o so_o that_o he_o be_v now_o as_o no_o body_n with_o himself_o who_o do_v so_o much_o please_v himself_o before_o and_o do_v challenge_v to_o himself_o authority_n to_o put_v the_o gospel_n to_o flight_n luke_n put_v down_o his_o name_n in_o hebrew_n in_o this_o place_n saul_n saul_n because_o he_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o speak_v unto_o he_o undoubted_o according_a to_o the_o common_a custom_n of_o the_o country_n 5_o who_o be_v thou_o lord_n we_o have_v paul_n now_o somewhat_o tame_v but_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o christ_n disciple_n pride_n be_v correct_v in_o he_o and_o his_o fury_n be_v bring_v down_o but_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o so_o thorough_o heal_v that_o he_o obey_v christ_n he_o be_v only_o ready_a to_o receive_v commandment_n who_o be_v before_o a_o blasphemer_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o question_n of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v afraid_a and_o throw_v down_o with_o amazedness_n for_o why_o do_v he_o not_o know_v by_o so_o many_o sign_n of_o god_n presence_n that_o it_o be_v god_n that_o speak_v therefore_o that_o voice_n proceed_v from_o a_o pant_a and_o doubtful_a mind_n therefore_o christ_n drive_v he_o nigh_o unto_o repentance_n when_o he_o add_v i_o be_o jesus_n let_v we_o remember_v that_o that_o voice_n sound_v from_o heaven_n therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v pierce_v the_o mind_n of_o paul_n when_o he_o consider_v that_o he_o have_v make_v war_n against_o god_n hitherto_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v bring_v he_o by_o and_o by_o to_o true_a submission_n when_o he_o consider_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o escape_v scotfree_a if_o he_o shall_v continue_v rebellious_a against_o he_o who_o hand_n he_o can_v not_o escape_v this_o place_n contain_v a_o most_o profitable_a doctrine_n and_o the_o profit_n thereof_o be_v manifold_a for_o first_o christ_n show_v what_o great_a account_n he_o make_v of_o his_o gospel_n when_o he_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v his_o cause_n from_o which_o he_o will_v not_o be_v separate_v therefore_o he_o can_v no_o more_o refuse_v to_o defend_v the_o same_o than_o he_o can_v deny_v himself_o second_o
it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o lay_v wait_v for_o paul_n privy_o that_o do_v when_o they_o can_v do_v no_o good_a this_o way_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o they_o come_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o city_n and_o that_o then_o the_o gate_n be_v watch_v that_o they_o may_v by_o one_o mean_n or_o other_o catch_v he_o for_o paul_n say_v that_o aretas_n the_o king_n governor_n command_v that_o which_o luke_n attribute_v in_o this_o place_n to_o the_o jew_n 25_o the_o disciple_n have_v take_v he_o by_o night_n there_o be_v a_o question_n move_v here_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o disciple_n to_o save_v paul_n thus_o or_o no_o and_o also_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o paul_n to_o escape_v danger_n by_o this_o mean_n or_o no_o for_o the_o law_n say_v that_o the_o wall_n of_o city_n be_v holy_a and_o that_o the_o gate_n be_v holy_a therefore_o he_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v suffer_v death_n than_o to_o have_v suffer_v a_o public_a order_n to_o be_v break_v for_o his_o sake_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v consider_v why_o it_o be_v decree_v by_o the_o law_n that_o the_o wall_n shall_v not_o be_v violate_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o city_n may_v not_o be_v lay_v open_a to_o murder_n and_o robbery_n and_o that_o the_o citizen_n may_v be_v free_a from_o treason_n that_o reason_n cease_v when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o delivery_n of_o a_o innocent_a man_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o less_o lawful_a for_o the_o faithful_a to_o let_v down_o paul_n in_o a_o basket_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o any_o private_a person_n to_o leap_v over_o a_o wall_n that_o he_o may_v avoid_v the_o sudden_a invasion_n of_o the_o enemy_n cicero_n do_v handle_v this_o late_a member_n and_o he_o set_v down_o very_a well_o that_o although_o the_o law_n forbid_v a_o strange_a to_o come_v near_o the_o wall_n yet_o do_v not_o he_o offend_v who_o shall_v go_v up_o upon_o the_o wall_n to_o save_v the_o city_n because_o the_o law_n must_v always_o be_v incline_v to_o equity_n therefore_o paul_n be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o he_o escape_v by_o stealth_n see_v he_o may_v do_v that_o without_o raise_v any_o tumult_n among_o the_o people_n nevertheless_o we_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n use_v to_o humble_v those_o that_o be_v he_o see_v that_o paul_n be_v enforce_v to_o steal_v his_o life_n from_o the_o watchman_n of_o the_o city_n if_o he_o will_v save_v himself_o 11.32_o 2_o cor._n 11.32_o therefore_o he_o reckon_v this_o example_n among_o his_o infirmity_n he_o be_v acquaint_v betimes_o with_o the_o cross_n with_o this_o first_o exercise_n 26_o and_o when_o saul_n be_v at_o jerusalem_n he_o assay_v to_o join_v himself_o to_o the_o disciple_n and_o they_o be_v all_o afraid_a of_o he_o not_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v a_o disciple_n 27_o but_o when_o barnabas_n have_v take_v he_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o he_o tell_v they_o how_o that_o he_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o way_n and_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v to_o he_o and_o how_o he_o have_v behave_v himself_o bold_o at_o damascus_n in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n 28_o and_o he_o be_v conversant_a with_o they_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o when_o he_o be_v embolden_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 29_o he_o speak_v and_o dispute_v with_o the_o grecian_n and_o they_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v he_o 30_o which_o when_o the_o brethren_n know_v they_o bring_v he_o to_o caesarea_n and_o send_v he_o to_o tharsus_n 31_o then_o the_o church_n throughout_o all_o judea_n and_o galilee_n &_o samaria_n have_v peace_n and_o they_o be_v edify_v and_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 26_o when_o saul_n be_v these_o be_v yet_o hard_a entrance_n for_o paul_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o but_o a_o fresh_a water_n soldier_n in_o that_o when_o he_o have_v hardly_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o enemy_n the_o disciple_n will_v not_o receive_v he_o for_o he_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v so_o toss_v too_o and_o fro_o as_o it_o be_v in_o mockage_n that_o he_o can_v have_v no_o rest_a place_n all_o his_o own_o nation_n be_v set_v against_o he_o for_o christ_n cause_n the_o christian_n refuse_v he_o may_v he_o not_o have_v be_v quite_o discourage_v and_o out_o of_o hope_n as_o one_o expel_v out_o of_o man_n company_n first_o what_o remain_v but_o that_o he_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o church_n see_v he_o be_v not_o receive_v but_o when_o he_o remember_v the_o life_n which_o he_o have_v lead_v aforetime_o he_o marvele_v not_o that_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o he_o therefore_o he_o do_v patient_o suffer_v the_o brethren_n to_o refuse_v his_o company_n see_v they_o have_v just_a cause_n of_o fear_n this_o be_v true_a conversion_n that_o whereas_o he_o rage_v horrible_o before_o he_o do_v now_o valiant_o suffer_v the_o storm_n of_o persecution_n &_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n when_o as_o he_o can_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o company_n of_o the_o godly_a he_o wait_v with_o a_o quiet_a mind_n until_o god_n reconcile_v they_o unto_o he_o we_o must_v diligent_o note_v what_o he_o desire_v to_o wit_n that_o he_o may_v be_v number_v among_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n this_o can_v he_o not_o obtain_v here_o be_v no_o ambition_n but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v instruct_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o make_v more_o account_n even_o of_o the_o low_a place_n among_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n than_o of_o all_o mastership_n in_o corrupt_a and_o revolt_a synagogue_n and_o from_o this_o submission_n be_v he_o exalt_v unto_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o honour_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o principal_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o no_o man_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o teacher_n in_o the_o church_n save_v only_o he_o who_o willing_o submit_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o fellow_n disciple_n with_o other_o man_n 27_o when_o barnabas_n have_v take_v he_o whereas_o the_o disciple_n flee_v so_o fast_o from_o paul_n that_o be_v peradventure_o a_o point_n of_o too_o great_a fearfulness_n and_o yet_o he_o speak_v of_o none_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n but_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o he_o do_v either_o extenuate_v or_o lighten_v their_o fault_n because_o they_o suspect_v he_o for_o just_a cause_n who_o they_o have_v find_v and_o try_v to_o be_v such_o a_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v rash_o endanger_v themselves_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o entreat_v therefore_o i_o think_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o that_o fear_n which_o they_o conceive_v for_o just_a cause_n or_o that_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v even_o accuse_v for_o the_o same_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v call_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n they_o will_v have_v provoke_v not_o paul_n only_o but_o also_o all_o the_o fury_n of_o hell_n without_o fear_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o every_o fear_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v but_o such_o as_o cause_v we_o to_o turn_v aside_o from_o our_o duty_n the_o narration_n which_o luke_n add_v may_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o unto_o the_o person_n of_o barnabas_n as_o of_o paul_n yet_o i_o think_v rather_o that_o paul_n declare_v to_o the_o apostle_n what_o have_v befall_v he_o and_o yet_o the_o speech_n may_v be_v well_o apply_v to_o barnabas_n especial_o when_o as_o mention_v be_v make_v of_o paul_n his_o boldness_n 28_o luke_n say_v afterward_o that_o paul_n go_v in_o and_o out_o with_o the_o disciple_n which_o speech_n signify_v among_o the_o hebrew_n familiarity_n as_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o city_n be_v say_v to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o at_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n therefore_o after_o that_o paul_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o barnabas_n he_o begin_v to_o be_v count_v one_o of_o the_o flock_n that_o he_o may_v be_v thorough_o know_v to_o the_o church_n luke_n say_v again_o that_o he_o deal_v bold_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o which_o word_n he_o commend_v his_o stoutness_n and_o courage_n in_o profess_v the_o gospel_n for_o he_o dare_v never_o have_v whisper_v amid_o so_o many_o let_v unless_o he_o have_v be_v endow_v with_o rare_a constancy_n nevertheless_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v to_o wit_n every_o man_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o faith_n for_o though_o all_o be_v not_o paul_n yet_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o engender_v in_o our_o mind_n so_o great_a boldness_n that_o we_o be_v not_o altogether_o dumb_a when_o we_o have_v need_v to_o speak_v i_o
stranger_n from_o the_o church_n must_v be_v teach_v before_o the_o sign_n of_o adoption_n be_v give_v they_o but_o i_o say_v that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o church_n be_v from_o their_o mother_n womb_n of_o the_o household_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n yea_o the_o argument_n which_o they_o use_v preposterous_o against_o we_o do_v i_o turn_v back_o upon_o themselves_o for_o see_v that_o god_n have_v adopt_v the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a before_o they_o be_v bear_v i_o conclude_v thereupon_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v defraud_v of_o the_o outward_a sign_n otherwise_o man_n shall_v presume_v to_o take_v that_o from_o they_o which_o god_n have_v grant_v they_o as_o touch_v the_o manifest_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n there_o be_v no_o absurdity_n therein_o if_o it_o follow_v after_o baptism_n in_o they_o and_o as_o this_o testimony_n make_v nothing_o for_o maintenance_n of_o their_o error_n so_o it_o do_v strong_o refute_v the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n who_o tie_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o sign_n and_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v fetch_v from_o heaven_n with_o enchantment_n as_o those_o witch_n do_v think_v that_o they_o do_v pull_v down_o the_o moon_n with_o their_o charm_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o luke_n say_v that_o these_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v they_o who_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o baptize_v he_o show_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o include_v in_o baptism_n last_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v content_a with_o water_n alone_o when_o as_o they_o do_v baptise_v and_o will_v to_o god_n this_o plainness_n have_v be_v retain_v amongst_o their_o posterity_n and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o gather_v here_o and_o there_o diverse_a trifle_n whereof_o baptism_n be_v full_a in_o popery_n they_o think_v that_o the_o worthiness_n of_o baptism_n be_v adorn_v with_o oil_n salt_n spittle_n wax_v candle_n whereas_o they_o be_v rather_o filthy_a pollution_n which_o corrupt_v the_o pure_a and_o natural_a institution_n of_o christ_n 48_o and_o he_o command_v they_o to_o be_v baptize_v it_o be_v not_o of_o necessity_n that_o baptism_n shall_v be_v minister_v by_o peter_n hand_n as_o paul_n do_v likewise_o testify_v that_o he_o baptize_v few_o at_o corinthus_n for_o other_o minister_n may_v take_v this_o charge_n upon_o they_o whereas_o he_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o must_v not_o be_v restrain_v unto_o the_o form_n as_o we_o have_v say_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n but_o because_o christ_n be_v the_o proper_a scope_n of_o baptism_n therefore_o be_v we_o say_v to_o be_v baptize_v in_o his_o name_n when_o as_o luke_n say_v last_o of_o all_o that_o peter_n be_v request_v by_o cornelius_n and_o his_o kinsman_n that_o he_o will_v tarry_v a_o few_o day_n he_o commend_v in_o they_o their_o desire_n to_o profit_v they_o be_v indeed_o endue_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o be_v not_o so_o come_v to_o the_o top_n but_o that_o confirmation_n be_v as_o yet_o profitable_a for_o they_o and_o according_a to_o their_o example_n so_o often_o as_o opportunity_n to_o profit_n offer_v itself_o we_o must_v use_v it_o diligent_o and_o let_v we_o not_o swell_v with_o pride_n which_o stop_v the_o way_n before_o doctrine_n chap._n xi_o 1_o and_o the_o apostle_n and_o brethren_n which_o be_v in_o judea_n hear_v that_o the_o gentile_n also_o have_v embrace_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2_o and_o when_o peter_n be_v go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o circumcision_n reason_v with_o he_o 3_o say_v thou_o wente_v in_o unto_o man_n uncircumsise_v and_o have_v eat_v with_o they_o 4_o and_o peter_n begin_v and_o expound_v to_o they_o in_o order_n say_v 5_o i_o be_v in_o the_o city_n joppa_n pray_v and_o be_v in_o a_o trance_n i_o see_v a_o vision_n to_o wit_n a_o certain_a vessel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n like_o a_o great_a sheet_n tie_v by_o the_o four_o corner_n which_o come_v even_o unto_o i_o 6_o which_o when_o i_o consider_v earnest_o i_o see_v then_o four_o footed_a beast_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o wild_a beast_n and_o creep_a thing_n and_o bird_n of_o the_o heaven_n 7_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n say_v to_o i_o arise_v peter_n slay_v and_o eat_v 8_o then_o i_o say_v not_o so_o lord_n because_o there_o never_o enter_v into_o my_o mouth_n any_o common_a or_o uncleene_a thing_n 9_o and_o the_o voice_n answer_v i_o the_o second_o time_n from_o heaven_n profane_v not_o thou_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v make_v clean_o 10_o and_o this_o be_v do_v thrice_o and_o they_o be_v all_o receive_v into_o heaven_n again_o 11_o and_o behold_v the_o same_o hour_n three_o man_n stand_v nigh_o the_o house_n wherein_o i_o sit_v be_v send_v unto_o i_o from_o caesarea_n 12_o and_o the_o spirit_n command_v i_o to_o go_v with_o they_o doubt_v nothing_o and_o they_o come_v with_o i_o and_o these_o six_o brethren_n and_o we_o enter_v the_o man_n house_n 13_o and_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o he_o have_v see_v a_o angel_n stand_v at_o his_o house_n and_o say_v to_o he_o send_v man_n to_o joppa_n and_o fetch_v simon_n who_o surname_n be_v peter_n 14_o who_o shall_v speak_v to_o thou_o word_n whereby_o thou_o and_o all_o thy_o house_n shall_v be_v save_v 15_o furthermore_o when_o i_o begin_v to_o speak_v the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v down_o upon_o they_o even_o as_o upon_o we_o at_o the_o beginning_n 16_o and_o i_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o he_o have_v say_v john_n true_o have_v baptize_v with_o water_n but_o you_o shall_v be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 17_o therefore_o see_v that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o the_o like_a gift_n as_o unto_o we_o which_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v i_o that_o i_o can_v let_v god_n 18_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v these_o thing_n they_o hold_v their_o peace_n and_o glorify_a god_n say_v then_o have_v god_n also_o give_v unto_o the_o gentile_n repentance_n unto_o life_n 1_o and_o the_o apostle_n whereas_o luke_n declare_v that_o the_o fame_n of_o one_o house_n which_o be_v convert_v be_v spread_v abroad_o every_o where_n amongst_o the_o brethren_n that_o do_v arise_v by_o reason_n of_o admiration_n for_o the_o jew_n account_v it_o as_o a_o monster_n that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v gather_v unto_o they_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v hear_v that_o there_o have_v be_v man_n make_v of_o stone_n again_o the_o immoderate_a love_n of_o their_o nation_n do_v hinder_v they_o from_o acknowledge_v the_o work_n of_o god_n for_o we_o see_v that_o through_o this_o ambition_n and_o pride_n the_o church_n be_v trouble_v because_o the_o equality_n which_o do_v diminish_v their_o dignity_n be_v not_o tolerable_a for_o which_o cause_n they_o do_v contend_v stout_o to_o bring_v the_o neck_n of_o the_o gentile_n under_o the_o yoke_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v foretell_v by_o so_o many_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v gather_v of_o all_o people_n after_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o christ_n have_v give_v commandment_n to_o his_o apostle_n touch_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o few_o man_n shall_v move_v some_o as_o some_o strange_a thing_n and_o shall_v terrify_v other_o some_o as_o if_o it_o be_v some_o monster_n i_o answer_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v foretell_v touch_v the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v so_o take_v as_o if_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v make_v subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o place_n in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o call_n the_o beginning_n whereof_o they_o see_v then_o be_v not_o only_o unknowen_a but_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o reason_n for_o they_o do_v dream_v that_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o the_o gentile_n can_v be_v mix_v with_o the_o son_n of_o abraham_n and_o be_v make_v one_o body_n with_o they_o the_o ceremony_n be_v take_v away_o but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v great_a injury_n do_v to_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n for_o to_o what_o end_n serve_v the_o law_n save_v only_o to_o be_v the_o mid_a wall_n to_o note_v out_o the_o disagreement_n second_o because_o they_o be_v acquaint_v with_o that_o difference_n during_o their_o whole_a life_n the_o unloke_v for_o newness_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v so_o pierce_v they_o that_o they_o do_v forget_v all_o that_o which_o ought_v to_o have_v quiet_v their_o mind_n final_o they_o do_v not_o straightway_o comprehend_v the_o mystery_n which_o as_o paul_n teach_v be_v unknowen_a to_o the_o angel_n from_o the_o creation_n of_o
there_o second_o the_o great_a the_o rage_n of_o the_o enemy_n be_v the_o more_o wretched_a be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o brethren_n final_o paul_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o 3._o gal._n 3._o that_o judea_n have_v certain_a especial_a necessity_n whereof_o all_o other_o have_v regard_v not_o without_o cause_n and_o this_o thankfulness_n deserve_v no_o small_a commendation_n in_o that_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n think_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o help_v the_o needy_a brethren_n from_o who_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o just_a than_o that_o those_o shall_v reap_v earthly_a thing_n who_o have_v sow_v spiritual_a thing_n as_o every_o man_n be_v too_o much_o bend_v to_o provide_v for_o himself_o every_o man_n may_v ready_o have_v except_v and_o object_v why_o shall_v not_o i_o rather_o provide_v for_o myself_o but_o when_o they_o call_v to_o mind_v how_o great_o they_o be_v indebt_v to_o the_o brethren_n omit_v that_o carefulness_n they_o turn_v themselves_o to_o help_v they_o in_o sum_n this_o alm_n have_v a_o double_a end_n for_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n do_v the_o duty_n of_o charity_n towards_o their_o needy_a brethren_n &_o they_o do_v also_o testify_v by_o this_o sign_n what_o great_a account_n they_o make_v of_o the_o gospel_n while_o that_o they_o honour_v the_o place_n whence_o it_o come_v as_o every_o man_n be_v able_a we_o see_v the_o man_n of_o antioch_n observe_v in_o this_o place_n that_o mean_v which_o paul_n prescribe_v to_o the_o corinthian_n whether_o they_o do_v this_o of_o themselves_o 8.6_o 2._o cor._n 8.6_o or_o be_v instruct_v by_o he_o and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o continue_v like_a to_o himself_o in_o both_o place_n therefore_o we_o must_v follow_v this_o rule_n that_o every_o one_o consider_v how_o much_o be_v grant_v he_o impart_v the_o same_o courteous_o with_o his_o brethren_n as_o one_o that_o must_v give_v a_o account_n so_o shall_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o which_o be_v but_o poor_a shall_v have_v a_o liberal_a mind_n &_o that_o a_o small_a reward_n shall_v be_v count_v a_o fat_a &_o gorgeous_a sacrifice_n by_o this_o word_n determine_v luke_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o their_o oblation_n be_v voluntary_a which_o thing_n ought_v so_o to_o be_v as_o paul_n teach_v that_o we_o reach_v out_o our_o hand_n unto_o the_o needy_a 9.7_o 2._o cor._n 9.7_o not_o as_o constrain_v but_o cheerful_o when_o as_o he_o name_v every_o one_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o one_o do_v not_o prescribe_v another_o a_o law_n neither_o do_v they_o burden_n one_o another_o with_o their_o prejudice_n but_o that_o every_o man_n do_v bestow_v his_o liberality_n as_o seem_v good_a to_o himself_o and_o we_o must_v note_v the_o word_n diaconias_fw-la whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o rich_a man_n have_v great_a abundance_n give_v they_o upon_o that_o condition_n that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o poor_a in_o the_o dispensation_n commit_v to_o they_o by_o god_n last_o luke_n teach_v that_o the_o blessing_n be_v send_v not_o to_o all_o the_o whole_a nation_n but_o only_o to_o those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n not_o because_o we_o ought_v never_o to_o use_v any_o bountifulness_n or_o courtesy_n towards_o the_o unbeliever_n see_v love_n ought_v to_o extend_v itself_o unto_o all_o mankind_n but_o because_o those_o aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v who_o god_n have_v join_v and_o link_v to_o we_o more_o near_o and_o with_o a_o more_o holy_a band_n 30_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o elder_n we_o must_v note_v two_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n do_v choose_v faithful_a man_n and_o of_o know_v honesty_n to_o carry_v their_o blessing_n second_o that_o they_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o elder_n that_o they_o may_v wise_o bestow_v the_o same_o for_o if_o alm_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o common_a people_n or_o be_v set_v in_o the_o midst_n where_o every_o one_o may_v take_v what_o he_o will_v every_o man_n will_v by_o and_o by_o take_v it_o to_o himself_o as_o if_o it_o be_v some_o common_a prey_n and_o so_o he_o that_o be_v most_o bold_a will_v defraud_v the_o needy_a yea_o through_o his_o gredinesse_n he_o will_v cut_v the_o throat_n of_o the_o hungry_a therefore_o let_v we_o mark_v these_o place_n which_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v not_o only_o deal_v upright_o and_o faithful_o but_o that_o there_o be_v also_o a_o order_n &_o wisdom_n require_v as_o well_o in_o make_v choice_n as_o in_o all_o our_o administration_n those_o be_v call_v elder_n in_o who_o hand_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v among_o who_o the_o apostle_n be_v chief_a the_o man_n of_o antioch_n refer_v the_o holy_a money_n which_o they_o have_v appoint_v for_o the_o poor_a to_o their_o discretion_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o this_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o deacons_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v deny_v that_o they_o can_v both_o serve_v table_n and_o attend_v upon_o doctrine_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a that_o the_o deacon_n be_v appoint_v over_o table_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v under_o the_o elder_n neither_o do_v they_o any_o thing_n but_o at_o their_o appointment_n chap._n xii_o 1_o about_o that_o time_n herod_n the_o king_n stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o afflict_v certain_a of_o the_o church_n 2_o and_o he_o kill_v james_n the_o brother_n of_o john_n with_o the_o sword_n 3_o and_o when_o he_o see_v that_o this_o please_v the_o jew_n he_o proceed_v to_o take_v peter_n also_o then_o be_v the_o day_n of_o sweet_a bread_n 4_o when_o he_o have_v take_v he_o also_o he_o put_v he_o in_o prison_n deliver_v he_o to_o four_o quaternion_n of_o soldier_n to_o be_v keep_v intend_v after_o easter_n to_o bring_v he_o forth_o to_o the_o people_n 5_o therefore_o peter_n be_v keep_v in_o prison_n but_o continual_a prayer_n be_v make_v for_o he_o of_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o here_o follow_v new_a persecution_n raise_v by_o herod_n we_o see_v that_o the_o church_n have_v some_o short_a truce_n that_o it_o may_v as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o short_a breathe_n recover_v some_o courage_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o that_o it_o may_v then_o fight_v afresh_o so_o at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o faithful_a have_v bear_v the_o brunt_n of_o one_o or_o two_o conflict_n shall_v promise_v themselves_o rest_n or_o shall_v desire_v such_o a_o call_n as_o old_a overwear_a soldier_n use_v to_o have_v let_v this_o suffice_v they_o if_o the_o lord_n grant_v they_o some_o time_n wherein_o they_o may_v recover_v their_o strength_n this_o herod_n be_v agrippa_n the_o great_a the_o son_n of_o aristobulus_n who_o his_o father_n slay_v josephus_n do_v no_o where_n call_v he_o herod_n it_o may_v be_v because_o he_o have_v a_o brother_n who_o be_v king_n of_o chalcis_n who_o name_n be_v herod_n this_o man_n be_v incense_v to_o afflict_v the_o church_n not_o so_o much_o for_o any_o love_n he_o have_v to_o religion_n as_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o may_v flatter_v the_o common_a people_n which_o do_v otherwise_o not_o great_o favour_v he_o or_o rather_o he_o be_v move_v hereunto_o with_o tyrannical_a cruelty_n because_o he_o be_v afraid_a of_o innovation_n which_o tyrant_n do_v always_o fear_v lest_o it_o trouble_v the_o quiet_a estate_n of_o their_o dominion_n yet_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o he_o do_v shed_v innocent_a blood_n that_o according_a to_o the_o common_a craft_n of_o king_n he_o may_v gratify_v a_o furious_a people_n because_o saint_n luke_n will_v short_o after_o declare_v that_o peter_n the_o apostle_n be_v put_v into_o prison_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o pleasant_a spectacle_n he_o kill_v james._n undoubted_o the_o cruelty_n of_o this_o mad_a man_n be_v restrain_v and_o bridle_v by_o the_o secret_a power_n of_o god_n for_o assure_o he_o will_v never_o have_v be_v content_a with_o one_o or_o two_o murder_n and_o so_o have_v abstain_v from_o persecute_v the_o rest_n but_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v pyle_v up_o martyr_n upon_o heap_n unless_o god_n have_v set_v his_o hand_n against_o he_o and_o defend_v his_o flock_n so_o when_o we_o see_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o godliness_n be_v full_a of_o fury_n do_v not_o commit_v horrible_a slaughter_n that_o they_o may_v mix_v and_o imbrue_v all_o thing_n with_o blood_n let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o need_v not_o thank_v their_o moderation_n and_o clemency_n for_o this_o but_o because_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v spare_v his_o sheep_n he_o do_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o do_v so_o much_o hurt_v as_o they_o will_v this_o herod_n be_v not_o so_o courteous_a that_o
he_o will_v stick_v to_o win_v peace_n or_o the_o people_n favour_n with_o the_o punishment_n of_o a_o hundred_o man_n or_o more_o wherefore_o we_o must_v think_v with_o ourselves_o that_o he_o be_v tie_v by_o one_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o he_o that_o he_o may_v not_o more_o vehement_o oppress_v the_o church_n he_o slay_v james_n as_o when_o any_o sedition_n be_v raise_v the_o head_n and_o captain_n go_v first_o to_o the_o pot_n that_o the_o common_a riff_o raff_o may_n by_o their_o punishment_n be_v terrify_v nevertheless_o the_o lord_n suffer_v he_o who_o he_o have_v furnish_v with_o constancy_n to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n that_o by_o death_n he_o may_v get_v the_o victory_n as_o a_o strong_a and_o invincible_a champion_n so_o that_o the_o attempt_n of_o tyrant_n notwithstanding_o god_n make_v choice_n of_o sweet_a smell_a sacrifice_n to_o establish_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o gospel_n luke_n call_v this_o james_n which_o be_v slay_v the_o brother_n of_o john_n that_o he_o may_v distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o son_n of_o alpheus_n for_o whereas_o some_o make_v he_o a_o third_o cousin_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v only_o some_o one_o of_o the_o disciple_n i_o do_v not_o like_v of_o that_o because_o i_o be_o by_o strong_a reason_n persuade_v to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o let_v he_o that_o will_v repair_n to_o the_o second_o to_o the_o galathian_o therefore_o i_o think_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o son_n of_o alphe_fw-la be_v all_o one_o who_o the_o jew_n throw_v down_o headlong_o from_o the_o top_n of_o the_o temple_n who_o death_n be_v so_o high_o commend_v for_o his_o singular_a praise_n of_o holiness_n 3_o see_v that_o it_o please_v the_o jew_n it_o appear_v more_o plain_o by_o this_o that_o herod_n be_v not_o move_v either_o with_o any_o zeal_n that_o he_o have_v to_o moses_n law_n or_o with_o any_o hatred_n of_o the_o gospel_n thus_o to_o persecute_v the_o church_n but_o that_o he_o may_v provide_v for_o his_o own_o private_a affair_n for_o he_o proceed_v in_o his_o cruelty_n that_o he_o may_v win_v the_o people_n favour_n therefore_o we_o must_v know_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a cause_n for_o which_o the_o church_n be_v assault_v on_o every_o side_n oftentimes_o perverse_a zeal_n drive_v the_o wicked_a headlong_o to_o fight_v for_o their_o superstition_n and_o that_o they_o may_v sacrifice_v a_o offering_n to_o their_o idol_n by_o shee_v innocent_a blood_n but_o the_o more_o part_n be_v move_v with_o private_a commodity_n only_o so_o in_o time_n past_a at_o such_o time_n as_o nero_n know_v after_o the_o burn_a of_o the_o city_n that_o he_o be_v loathe_v and_o hate_v of_o the_o people_n he_o seek_v by_o this_o subtle_a mean_n to_o get_v into_o favour_n again_o or_o at_o least_o he_o go_v about_o to_o stay_v their_o slander_n and_o complaint_n by_o put_v certain_a thousand_o of_o the_o godly_a to_o death_n in_o like_a sort_n that_o herod_n may_v win_v the_o people_n favour_n who_o do_v love_v he_o but_o a_o little_a he_o put_v the_o christian_n to_o death_n as_o a_o price_n wherewith_o he_o may_v redeem_v their_o favour_n and_o such_o be_v our_o estate_n at_o this_o day_n for_o though_o all_o man_n run_v by_o troop_n upon_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n yet_o few_o be_v pook_v forward_o with_o superstition_n but_o some_o sell_v themselves_o to_o antichriste_n like_o profitable_a bond_n slave_n othersome_a bear_n with_o and_o commend_v the_o outrageous_a outcry_n of_o monk_n and_o the_o common_a people_n but_o we_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n be_v abject_n must_v be_v glad_a to_o bear_v their_o mock_n yet_o there_o be_v one_o comfort_n which_o do_v excellent_o keep_v we_o on_o foot_n in_o that_o we_o know_v that_o our_o blood_n be_v precious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god_n which_o the_o world_n do_v shameful_o abuse_v yea_o the_o more_o shameful_o and_o reprochefullie_o the_o wicked_a do_v handle_v we_o so_o much_o the_o less_o shall_v god_n goodness_n forsake_v us._n 4_o add_v four_o quaternion_n of_o soldier_n luke_n do_v in_o this_o place_n declare_v by_o circumstance_n that_o peter_n be_v as_o it_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o his_o grave_n so_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o he_o be_v quite_o past_a hope_n for_o as_o they_o divide_v the_o day_n and_o night_n into_o four_o part_n by_o three_o hour_n so_o herod_n divide_v the_o watch_n that_o four_o soldier_n may_v always_o keep_v watch_n and_o that_o one_o quaternion_n may_v succeed_v another_o every_o three_o hour_n he_o show_v the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v not_o forthwith_o put_v to_o death_n because_o it_o have_v be_v a_o heinous_a offence_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n in_o the_o easter_n holiday_n therefore_o herod_n do_v not_o delay_v the_o time_n as_o doubtful_a what_o to_o do_v but_o do_v only_o wait_v for_o opportunity_n yea_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o time_n when_o as_o his_o gift_n may_v be_v more_o plausible_a because_o there_o come_v a_o great_a multitude_n together_o from_o all_o part_n unto_o the_o holy_a day_n 5_o but_o prayer_n be_v make_v luke_n teach_v here_o that_o the_o faithful_a do_v not_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n foreslowe_v their_o duty_n peter_n stand_v in_o the_o foreward_n alone_o but_o all_o the_o rest_n fight_v with_o their_o prayer_n together_o with_o he_o and_o they_o aid_v he_o so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v able_a hereby_o we_o do_v also_o gather_v that_o they_o be_v not_o discourage_v for_o by_o prayer_n they_o testify_v that_o they_o persist_v so_o much_o as_o they_o be_v able_a in_o defence_n of_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o peter_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o life_n this_o place_n teach_v first_o how_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v affect_v when_o we_o see_v our_o brethren_n persecute_v by_o the_o wicked_a for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o if_o we_o be_v slothful_a and_o if_o we_o be_v not_o inward_o touch_v with_o their_o danger_n we_o do_v not_o only_o defraud_v they_o of_o the_o due_a duty_n of_o love_n but_o also_o treacherous_o forsake_v the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o assure_o if_o the_o cause_n be_v common_a yea_o if_o they_o fight_v for_o our_o safety_n and_o salvation_n we_o do_v not_o only_o forsake_v they_o but_o even_o christ_n and_o ourselves_o and_o the_o present_a necessity_n require_v that_o they_o be_v far_o more_o fervent_a in_o prayer_n then_o common_o they_o be_v whosoever_o will_v be_v count_v christian_n we_o see_v some_o of_o our_o brethren_n be_v bring_v to_o extreme_a poverty_n live_v in_o exile_n other_o we_o see_v imprison_v many_o cast_n into_o stink_a dungeon_n many_o consume_v with_o fire_n yea_o we_o see_v new_a torment_n oftentimes_o invent_v whereby_o be_v long_o torment_v they_o may_v feel_v death_n unless_o these_o provocation_n sharpen_v our_o desire_n to_o pray_v we_o be_v more_o than_o blockish_a therefore_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o persecution_n arise_v let_v we_o by_o and_o by_o get_v ourselves_o to_o prayer_n also_o it_o be_v a_o likely_a thing_n that_o the_o church_n take_v great_a thought_n for_o peter_n life_n because_o they_o shall_v have_v suffer_v great_a loss_n if_o he_o have_v go_v neither_o do_v luke_n say_v bare_o that_o prayer_n be_v make_v but_o he_o add_v also_o that_o it_o be_v earnest_a and_o continual_a whereby_o he_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o faithful_a pray_v not_o cold_o or_o over_o field_n but_o so_o long_o as_o peter_n be_v in_o the_o conflict_n the_o faithful_a do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o help_v he_o and_o that_o without_o wearisomeness_n we_o must_v always_o understande_v the_o name_n of_o god_n which_o be_v here_o express_v whensoever_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o prayer_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a and_o first_o principle_n of_o faith_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o direct_v our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n alone_o as_o he_o challenge_v to_o himself_o this_o peculiar_a worship_n 50.15_o psal_n 50.15_o call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o tribulation_n 6_o and_o when_o herod_n be_v about_o to_o bring_v he_o forth_o the_o same_o night_n sleep_v peter_n between_o two_o soldier_n bind_v with_o two_o chain_n and_o the_o keeper_n keep_v the_o prison_n before_o the_o door_n 7_o and_o behold_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n stand_v and_o a_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o habitation_n and_o he_o smoote_v peter_n side_n say_v arise_v straightway_o and_o his_o chain_n fall_v from_o his_o hand_n 8_o and_o the_o angel_n say_v to_o he_o gird_v thyself_o and_o bind_v on_o thy_o sandale_n and_o he_o do_v so_o then_o he_o say_v to_o he_o put_v thy_o garment_n about_o thou_o and_o follow_v i_o 9_o and_o go_v out_o he_o follow_v he_o neither_o understand_v he_o that_o that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o angel_n
the_o cause_n why_o he_o do_v not_o let_v they_o go_v free_a be_v partly_o rage_v mix_v with_o tyrannous_a cruelty_n and_o partly_o shamefastness_n though_o some_o expound_v it_o otherwise_o that_o he_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v forthwith_o and_o whether_o be_v angry_a he_o deliver_v they_o to_o the_o hangman_n or_o he_o be_v content_a to_o punish_v they_o with_o perpetual_a imprisonment_n it_o be_v assure_o a_o excellent_a example_n of_o blindness_n that_o whereas_o he_o ought_v to_o perceive_v the_o power_n of_o god_n yea_o though_o his_o eye_n be_v shut_v yet_o do_v he_o not_o bend_v neither_o do_v he_o wax_v more_o meek_a but_o proceed_v to_o resist_v god_n of_o obstinate_a malice_n thus_o do_v satan_n deprive_v the_o wicked_a of_o understanding_n that_o in_o see_v they_o see_v not_o and_o the_o lord_n by_o smite_v they_o with_o this_o horrible_a amazedness_n do_v just_o revenge_v himself_o and_o his_o church_n and_o descend_v from_o judea_n to_o caesarea_n he_o stay_v there_o 20_o and_o herod_n be_v offend_v with_o those_o of_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n but_o they_o come_v unto_o he_o with_o one_o consent_n and_o persuade_v blastus_n the_o chamberlain_n to_o the_o king_n they_o require_v peace_n because_o their_o country_n be_v nourish_v by_o the_o king_n country_n 21_o and_o upon_o a_o day_n appoint_v herod_n array_v himself_o in_o royal_a apparel_n and_o sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n he_o make_v a_o oration_n unto_o they_o 22_o and_o the_o people_n cry_v it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o man_n 23_o and_o straightway_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n smite_v he_o because_o he_o give_v not_o the_o glory_n to_o god_n and_o be_v eat_v of_o worm_n he_o die_v 24_o furthermore_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v increase_v and_o multiply_v 25_o and_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n return_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o antioch_n have_v finish_v their_o office_n take_v john_n with_o they_o which_o be_v call_v mark_n 20_o a_o worthy_a history_n which_o do_v not_o only_o show_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o glass_n what_o end_n be_v prepare_v for_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o how_o great_o god_n hate_v pride_n the_o scripture_n say_v that_o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a god_n himself_o do_v show_v a_o lively_a image_n thereof_o in_o the_o person_n of_o herod_n 5.5_o 1._o pet._n 5.5_o and_o assure_o man_n can_v extol_v themselves_o high_o than_o become_v they_o but_o they_o shall_v make_v war_n with_o god_n who_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v surpass_v all_o command_v all_o flesh_n to_o keep_v silence_n and_o if_o god_n do_v so_o sharp_o punish_v pride_n in_o a_o king_n who_o prosperity_n do_v puff_n up_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o those_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n who_o be_v ridiculous_o puff_v up_o without_o cause_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v the_o course_n of_o the_o history_n that_o all_o thing_n go_v well_o with_o herod_n after_o that_o he_o have_v miserable_o vex_v the_o church_n he_o enforce_v the_o nation_n round_o about_o he_o be_v tame_v with_o hunger_n to_o come_v to_o crave_v pardon_n upon_o their_o knee_n as_o if_o god_n have_v reward_v he_o well_o for_o his_o wicked_a fury_n this_o be_v no_o small_a trial_n for_o the_o godly_a who_o may_v have_v think_v thus_o with_o themselves_o that_o god_n care_v not_o for_o they_o and_o they_o be_v afraid_a lest_o with_o herod_n power_n his_o tyranny_n &_o cruelty_n shall_v increase_v but_o the_o lord_n have_v another_o purpose_n for_o he_o set_v the_o oppressor_n of_o his_o church_n on_o high_a that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o great_a fall_n therefore_o that_o shadowish_a felicity_n wherein_o he_o delight_v too_o much_o be_v unto_o he_o a_o certain_a fat_a against_o the_o day_n of_o slaughter_n in_o like_a sort_n when_o at_o this_o day_n we_o see_v the_o bloody_a enemy_n of_o the_o church_n carry_v up_o upon_o the_o wing_n of_o fortune_n into_o heaven_n 12._o pro._n 16.18_o &_o 12._o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v discourage_v but_o let_v we_o rather_o call_v to_o mind_v that_o say_n of_o solomon_n pride_n go_v before_o calamity_n and_o the_o heart_n be_v lift_v up_o before_o a_o fall_n herod_n be_v displease_v luke_n use_v the_o compound_a participle_n thumomachon_n which_o signify_v privy_a grudge_n or_o hatred_n therefore_o herod_n do_v not_o make_v open_a war_n against_o those_o city_n but_o such_o be_v his_o displeasure_n that_o he_o assay_v to_o subdue_v they_o by_o policy_n as_o it_o be_v by_o undermind_v they_o by_o little_a and_o little_a it_o be_v a_o rare_a matter_n say_v demosthenes_n for_o free_a city_n to_o agree_v with_o monarch_n moreover_o herod_n be_v natural_o cruel_a bold_a of_o unsatiable_a covetousness_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o tyrus_n and_o sidon_n be_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a bar_n or_o rail_v to_o stay_v his_o fury_n as_o they_o be_v wealthy_a city_n &_o unaccustomed_a to_o bear_v the_o yoke_n also_o the_o remembrance_n of_o their_o old_a glory_n may_v have_v encourage_v they_o forasmuch_o as_o pride_n come_v common_o of_o wealth_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o these_o two_o city_n be_v proud_a 12._o isai_n 23.8_o job._n 12._o the_o one_o whereof_o isaias_n call_v queen_n of_o the_o sea_n who_o merchant_n he_o say_v be_v king_n and_o her_o chapman_n duke_n also_o he_o say_v elsewhere_o that_o sidon_n be_v become_v proud_a by_o reason_n of_o her_o wealth_n and_o although_o they_o have_v sundry_a time_n be_v bring_v almost_o to_o utter_v ruin_n yet_o the_o commodiousnes_n of_o their_o situation_n do_v short_o restore_v they_o to_o their_o wont_a state_n hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o can_v more_o hardly_o digest_v agrippa_n of_o late_a a_o base_a fellow_n a_o man_n of_o no_o estimation_n &_o one_o who_o have_v be_v let_v out_o of_o prison_n especial_o see_v that_o he_o behave_v himself_o so_o cruel_o towards_o his_o own_o subject_n &_o be_v troublesome_a and_o injurious_a to_o his_o neighbour_n forasmuch_o as_o their_o country_n be_v nourish_v it_o have_v not_o be_v good_a for_o he_o to_o have_v assail_v the_o man_n of_o tyre_n and_o sidon_n with_o open_a war_n therefore_o he_o give_v commandment_n that_o there_o shall_v no_o corn_n nor_o victual_n be_v carry_v out_o of_o his_o realm_n by_o this_o mean_n do_v he_o without_o any_o army_n besiege_v they_o by_o little_a and_o little_a for_o the_o border_n of_o both_o city_n be_v straight_o and_o their_o ground_n barren_a whereas_o there_o be_v a_o great_a people_n to_o be_v feed_v therefore_o after_o that_o they_o be_v tame_v with_o hunger_n they_o humble_o crave_v peace_n and_o that_o not_o free_a for_o assure_o they_o have_v some_o law_n give_v they_o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o this_o blastus_n mention_v by_o luke_n be_v not_o with_o bare_a word_n persuade_v but_o with_o reward_n win_v to_o entreat_v the_o peace_n i_o know_v not_o why_o erasmus_n do_v think_v it_o good_a to_o translate_v this_o place_n otherwise_o than_o the_o word_n import_v 21_o upon_o a_o appoint_a day_n luke_n say_v that_o the_o man_n of_o tyrus_n and_o sidon_n have_v peace_n grant_v they_o because_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o king_n oration_n without_o doubt_n that_o he_o may_v make_v they_o his_o underling_n hereafter_o the_o same_o history_n be_v extant_a in_o josephus_n in_o his_o nineteenth_o book_n of_o antiquity_n save_v only_o that_o he_o call_v he_o every_o where_o agrippa_n who_o luke_n call_v herod_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o agrippa_n be_v his_o proper_a name_n &_o that_o he_o be_v call_v by_o none_o other_o name_n so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v a_o private_a man_n but_o after_o that_o he_o be_v advance_v to_o be_v a_o king_n he_o take_v to_o himself_o princely_a dignity_n according_a to_o the_o name_n of_o his_o grandfather_n josephus_n &_o luke_n agree_v together_o wonderful_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o in_o all_o circumstance_n first_o they_o agree_v concern_v the_o place_n josephus_n say_v that_o his_o garment_n be_v embroider_v with_o gold_n on_o which_o when_o the_o sun_n beam_n light_n it_o do_v glister_v again_o &_o that_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n which_o move_v the_o courteour_n to_o call_v he_o a_o god_n that_o he_o be_v sudden_o wound_v also_o that_o there_o be_v see_v a_o owl_n sit_v upon_o a_o cord_n over_o his_o head_n which_o cord_n do_v prognosticate_v his_o ruin_n and_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o doubt_v that_o his_o sacrilegious_a pride_n be_v punish_v with_o this_o kind_n of_o punishment_n that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o confess_v the_o same_o open_o amid_o his_o cruel_a torment_n behold_v i_o who_o you_o call_v a_o god_n i_o be_o enforce_v to_o finish_v my_o life_n most_o miserable_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v there_o of_o
that_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o a_o sound_a mind_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o fight_v against_o god_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n again_o he_o hit_v they_o in_o the_o tooth_n with_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v object_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o some_o dark_a and_o unknown_a matter_n he_o add_v also_o that_o he_o do_v speak_v of_o no_o other_o prophecy_n then_o of_o those_o which_o be_v read_v every_o sabbath_n day_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o oracle_n of_o scripture_n be_v most_o plain_a &_o know_v to_o the_o most_o ignorant_a &_o yet_o they_o know_v they_o not_o thus_o do_v paul_n teach_v how_o monstrous_a their_o unbelief_n be_v that_o he_o may_v make_v the_o hearer_n loathe_v it_o and_o by_o this_o example_n be_v we_o teach_v that_o although_o the_o lord_n appear_v to_o we_o by_o the_o scripture_n yet_o all_o man_n have_v not_o eye_n after_o that_o also_o the_o blockishness_n of_o the_o nation_n wax_v more_o gross_a as_o paul_n say_v elsewhere_o that_o there_o be_v a_o veil_n put_v before_o their_o face_n that_o they_o can_v see_v moses_n when_o he_o be_v present_a in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o must_v note_v that_o we_o be_v recall_v to_o the_o scripture_n lest_o the_o authority_n of_o great_a man_n deceive_v we_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o any_o man_n invent_v to_o himself_o a_o prejudice_n according_a to_o the_o wicked_a meaning_n of_o other_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v acquit_v for_o paul_n exhort_v the_o man_n of_o antioth_n to_o judge_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o visured_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v it_o give_v that_o it_o may_v be_v read_v and_o read_v be_v not_o appoint_v in_o vain_a by_o the_o lord_n but_o that_o all_o godly_a man_n may_v thereby_o profit_v and_o judge_v what_o be_v right_a this_o they_o fulfil_v 4.28_o act._n 3.23_o act._n 4.28_o so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o not_o only_a creature_n void_a of_o understanding_n but_o even_o the_o very_a devil_n and_o also_o the_o wicked_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v execute_v by_o they_o that_o which_o with_o himself_o he_o have_v decree_v the_o same_o have_v we_o in_o the_o third_o &_o four_o chapter_n that_o when_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n do_v most_o of_o all_o rage_n to_o destroy_v he_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o obtain_v their_o purpose_n but_o rather_o they_o bring_v that_o to_o pass_v with_o their_o own_o hand_n which_o god_n have_v in_o his_o counsel_n determine_v which_o thing_n make_v not_o a_o little_a for_o commendation_n of_o god_n truth_n because_o he_o be_v not_o only_o of_o sufficient_a power_n to_o perform_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v but_o also_o those_o who_o go_v about_o to_o bring_v his_o counsel_n to_o nought_o do_v their_o endeavour_n to_o establish_v they_o though_o it_o be_v against_o their_o will_n for_o how_o shall_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n stand_v which_o the_o chief_a enemy_n be_v enforce_v to_o fulfil_v yet_o wisdom_n be_v necessary_a here_o lest_o we_o join_v god_n and_o satan_n together_o for_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o therefore_o excusable_a because_o they_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n because_o we_o must_v consider_v their_o wicked_a will_n and_o not_o the_o event_n which_o they_o do_v not_o look_v for_o yea_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v count_v a_o miracle_n if_o we_o look_v into_o their_o work_n by_o itself_o it_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o god_n but_o as_o god_n do_v in_o the_o sun_n and_o other_o planet_n by_o wonderful_a cunning_a temper_n contrary_a motion_n &_o such_o as_o strive_v among_o themselves_o so_o he_o direct_v the_o perverse_a endeavour_n of_o the_o wicked_a by_o his_o secret_a power_n unto_o another_o end_n than_o they_o think_v upon_o and_o do_v desire_v lest_o they_o shall_v do_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o he_o will_v they_o in_o deed_n as_o touch_v themselves_o do_v contrary_a to_o his_o will_n but_o it_o fall_v out_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n after_o a_o incomprehensible_a manner_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o course_n be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n no_o marvel_n if_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n see_v it_o not_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v discern_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n or_o rather_o it_o must_v be_v reverence_v &_o those_o dog_n who_o bark_n against_o it_o must_v be_v despise_v with_o their_o wantonness_n 28_o when_o as_o they_o find_v no_o cause_n of_o death_n it_o be_v very_o appertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n that_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n guiltless_a for_o we_o can_v not_o have_v be_v justify_v by_o his_o death_n if_o he_o have_v suffer_v death_n for_o his_o own_o evil_a deed_n therefore_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v guiltless_a that_o his_o death_n may_v be_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o undoubted_o i_o think_v that_o paul_n do_v plain_o declare_v that_o pilate_n condemn_v christ_n not_o according_a to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n but_o that_o he_o consent_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n after_o that_o he_o be_v overcome_v with_o the_o ungodly_a request_n of_o the_o people_n and_o also_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v drive_v by_o lust_n and_o not_o enforce_v by_o reason_n to_o desire_v christ_n death_n for_o it_o stand_v he_o upon_o to_o terrify_v the_o hearer_n that_o they_o may_v not_o couple_v themselves_o to_o so_o wicked_a a_o fact_n but_o luke_n do_v now_o in_o few_o word_n set_v down_o after_o his_o common_a custom_n those_o thing_n which_o paul_n do_v then_o more_o at_o large_a declare_v 29_o when_o they_o have_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n to_o wit_n which_o it_o please_v god_n shall_v be_v do_v by_o they_o for_o they_o do_v so_o handle_v christ_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o scripture_n leave_v unfulfil_v by_o this_o mean_n be_v the_o stumble_a block_n which_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o flesh_n conceive_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o ignominy_n of_o the_o cross_n take_v away_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o lay_v open_a to_o the_o furious_a fury_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o he_o obey_v his_o father_n decree_n 27.57_o mat._n 27.57_o furthermore_o it_o do_v also_o in_o scripture_n appear_v what_o condition_n be_v appoint_v for_o he_o in_o time_n past_a whereas_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v bury_v by_o the_o same_o which_o have_v slay_v he_o it_o seem_v contrary_a to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o it_o may_v be_v that_o luke_n do_v take_v the_o word_n bury_v indefinite_o and_o if_o it_o please_v you_o to_o refer_v it_o unto_o the_o same_o it_o shall_v be_v synecdoche_n for_o he_o be_v bury_v with_o pilate_n his_o leave_n and_o at_o the_o appointment_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o priest_n there_o be_v watchman_n set_v to_o watch_v the_o grave_n therefore_o though_o joseph_n and_o nicodemus_n do_v bury_v christ_n that_o be_v ascribe_v unproper_o and_o yet_o not_o absurd_o to_o the_o jew_n because_o it_o be_v not_o paul_n drift_n in_o this_o place_n to_o commend_v the_o good_a deed_n but_o to_o prove_v christ_n his_o resurrection_n because_o god_n take_v he_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n who_o his_o enemy_n have_v shut_v up_o there_o therefore_o he_o give_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o take_v thence_o privily_o or_o by_o stealth_n but_o that_o it_o be_v lay_v in_o a_o place_n both_o famous_a and_o know_v to_o the_o adversary_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o even_o they_o be_v set_v to_o watch_v it_o &_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o it_o be_v not_o find_v whence_o we_o may_v gather_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o resurrection_n 30_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o up_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a yet_o join_v with_o the_o resurrection_n therefore_o do_v paul_n stand_v long_o upon_o this_o second_o point_n for_o he_o shall_v never_o have_v persuade_v his_o hearer_n that_o they_o be_v to_o seek_v salvation_n in_o christ_n death_n unless_o the_o power_n of_o almighty_a god_n have_v appear_v in_o raise_v christ_n from_o death_n 31_o after_o that_o he_o have_v say_v that_o christ_n come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n which_o be_v beset_v with_o the_o hire_a minister_n of_o the_o adversary_n he_o add_v now_o that_o he_o appear_v to_o many_o of_o the_o disciple_n which_o bear_v faithful_a witness_n to_o the_o people_n and_o he_o call_v they_o witness_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o office_n 1.8_o acts._n 1.8_o because_o they_o be_v choose_v for_o this_o purpose_n as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n or_o else_o declare_v simple_o
that_o be_v very_o seldom_o second_o there_o come_v but_o small_a fruit_n thereof_o and_o god_n have_v wrought_v miracle_n for_o the_o most_o part_n whereby_o the_o world_n may_v know_v he_o not_o simple_o or_o in_o his_o bare_a majesty_n but_o in_o his_o word_n so_o luke_n say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v establish_v by_o miracle_n not_o that_o some_o confuse_a religion_n may_v possess_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o that_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n go_v before_o they_o may_v be_v bring_v unto_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n whence_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v how_o foolishe_o the_o papist_n deal_n when_o as_o they_o endeavour_n to_o lead_v away_o the_o world_n from_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n and_o the_o gospel_n by_o bare_a miracle_n for_o we_o must_v hold_v that_o principle_n that_o those_o miracle_n which_o come_v from_o god_n at_o any_o time_n do_v never_o tend_v to_o any_o other_o end_n but_o that_o the_o gospel_n may_v have_v his_o perfect_a and_o full_a authority_n now_o must_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o gospel_n command_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o the_o dead_a to_o burn_v incense_n to_o idol_n to_o translate_v unto_o feign_a saint_n the_o grace_n of_o christ_n to_o take_v in_o hand_n vow_v pilgrimage_n to_o invent_v profane_a worshipping_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n then_o that_o these_o superstition_n shall_v take_v place_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o papist_n do_v wicked_o make_v engine_n of_o the_o shore_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o oppugn_v it_o to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v that_o which_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n grant_v that_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o servant_n miracle_n may_v be_v do_v in_o which_o word_n he_o teach_v that_o those_o be_v only_a minister_n who_o obey_v god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n who_o use_v their_o hand_n and_o industry_n wherefore_o in_o speak_v proper_o we_o can_v say_v that_o they_o be_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n his_o miracle_n but_o the_o miracle_n of_o god_n alone_o who_o do_v so_o work_v by_o man_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o glory_n darken_v by_o their_o ministry_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v the_o title_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o luke_n put_v in_o here_o that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v to_o we_o more_o amiable_a for_o in_o call_v it_o the_o word_n of_o grace_n it_o have_v a_o most_o pleasant_a taste_v because_o salvation_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o world_n in_o it_o through_o christ_n and_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o contrariety_n with_o the_o law_n wherein_o only_o the_o curse_n be_v set_v before_o us._n therefore_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v himself_o to_o we_o and_o may_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v merciful_a to_o us._n neither_o do_v this_o hinder_a that_o it_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n to_o the_o reprobate_n because_o they_o change_v not_o the_o nature_n thereof_o by_o their_o fault_n read_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n touch_v sign_n and_o wonder_n 2.16_o 2._o cor._n 2.16_o 4_o the_o multitude_n be_v divide_v the_o most_o troublesome_a part_n of_o the_o tragedy_n follow_v now_o for_o the_o city_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n &_o at_o length_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v enforce_v by_o the_o uproar_n of_o the_o people_n depart_v unto_o a_o other_o place_n if_o it_o be_v demand_v what_o be_v the_o original_n of_o the_o discord_n assure_o it_o flow_v from_o the_o gospel_n to_o which_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a than_o to_o cause_n discord_n but_o the_o frowardness_n of_o man_n cause_v that_o the_o gospel_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n be_v so_o soon_o as_o it_o come_v abroad_o the_o occasion_n of_o tumult_n wherefore_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o schism_n arise_v before_o we_o condemn_v those_o who_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o author_n it_o behove_v we_o wise_o to_o consider_v who_o ought_v to_o bear_v the_o blame_n we_o hear_v here_o that_o one_o city_n be_v divide_v whereby_o some_o be_v bring_v unto_o christ_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n pronounce_v this_o to_o the_o praise_n and_o not_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n the_o same_o rule_n must_v we_o observe_v at_o this_o day_n lest_o the_o gospel_n be_v burden_v with_o false_a envy_n if_o it_o bring_v not_o man_n together_o unto_o god_n but_o the_o wicked_a rage_n against_o it_o it_o be_v assure_o a_o miserable_a matter_n to_o see_v division_n among_o man_n but_o as_o the_o unity_n be_v accurse_v which_o do_v separate_v we_o all_o from_o god_n so_o it_o be_v better_a that_o a_o few_o shall_v depart_v a_o hundred_o time_n from_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n come_v in_o favour_n again_o with_o god_n then_o that_o disagree_v with_o he_o continual_o they_o shall_v have_v peace_n with_o the_o world_n 5_o and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o assault_n make_v of_o the_o gentile_n &_o jew_n together_o with_o their_o ruler_n to_o do_v they_o violence_n and_o to_o stone_n they_o 9_o when_o they_o know_v the_o matter_n they_o flee_v into_o city_n of_o lycaonia_n to_o lystra_n and_o derbe_n &_o to_o the_o country_n lie_v nigh_o there_o about_o on_o every_o side_n 7_o and_o there_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 8_o and_o there_o sit_v a_o certain_a man_n at_o lystra_n impotent_a in_o his_o foot_n who_o have_v be_v lame_a from_o his_o mother_n womb_n neither_o have_v he_o ever_o walk_v 9_o this_o man_n hear_v paul_n speak_v who_o behold_v he_o and_o see_v that_o he_o have_v faith_n to_o be_v heal_v 10_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n arise_v upright_o upon_o thy_o foot_n and_o he_o leap_v up_o and_o walk_v 5_o mark_v how_o far_o forth_o the_o holy_a champion_n of_o christ_n do_v suffer_v they_o give_v not_o back_o when_o their_o enemy_n do_v only_o set_v themselves_o against_o they_o but_o when_o the_o sedition_n wax_v hot_a and_o they_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o ston_a though_o they_o have_v many_o favourer_n of_o their_o doctrine_n they_o go_v no_o further_o but_o remember_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o warn_v the_o faithful_a in_o patience_n to_o possess_v their_o soul_n they_o avoid_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o though_o they_o flie-least_a they_o throw_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o death_n yet_o their_o constancy_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o they_o fear_v not_o danger_n for_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o other_o place_n also_o this_o be_v the_o right_a kind_n of_o fear_n when_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o run_v wilful_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n of_o they_o to_o be_v murder_v and_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o forslow_v their_o duty_n neither_o do_v fear_n hinder_v they_o from_o obey_v god_n when_o he_o call_v and_o so_o consequent_o they_o can_v afford_v if_o need_v be_v to_o go_v even_o through_o death_n itself_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n 8_o a_o certain_a man_n at_o lystra_n luke_n tecit_v one_o miracle_n which_o we_o may_v think_v be_v one_o of_o many_o but_o there_o be_v mention_n make_v of_o it_o alone_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o famous_a event_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v by_o and_o by_o what_o happen_v luke_n reckon_v up_o the_o circumstance_n which_o do_v more_o plain_o set_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o man_n do_v never_o walk_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o cripple_n even_o from_o his_o mother_n womb_n and_o that_o he_o be_v sudden_o heal_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o paul_n alone_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o his_o leg_n which_o be_v dead_a be_v make_v nimble_a so_o that_o he_o leap_v up_o without_o make_v any_o stop_n 9_o he_o hear_v paul_n speak_v hear_v be_v set_v down_o first_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o faith_n which_o luke_n will_v commend_v by_o and_o by_o be_v conceive_v of_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n therefore_o when_o he_o hear_v paul_n he_o hope_v to_o be_v heal_v but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o this_o be_v promise_v to_o he_o special_o for_o god_n do_v not_o command_v we_o to_o hope_v for_o every_o thing_n by_o and_o by_o when_o he_o offer_v unto_o we_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o the_o gospel_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o singular_a and_o extraordinary_a motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o cripple_n as_o it_o be_v on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o paul_n when_o he_o know_v his_o faith_n by_o behold_v he_o only_o it_o may_v be_v that_o many_o may_v receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o
within_o itself_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o weak_a mind_n shall_v be_v trouble_v and_o also_o faint_a and_o especial_o when_o the_o controversy_n be_v about_o doctrine_n which_o alone_o be_v the_o holy_a bond_n of_o brotherly_a unity_n final_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o do_v more_o indamage_v the_o gospel_n then_o civil_a discord_n because_o it_o do_v not_o only_o pierce_v and_o wound_v weak_a conscience_n but_o also_o minister_v occasion_n to_o the_o wicked_a to_o backbite_v wherefore_o we_o must_v diligent_o note_v this_o history_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a example_n if_o among_o those_o who_o profess_v the_o same_o gospel_n there_o arise_v some_o wrangling_n &_o strife_n about_o doctrine_n when_o proud_a man_n can_v get_v they_o a_o name_n whereof_o they_o be_v so_o furious_o desirous_a by_o no_o other_o mean_n but_o by_o bring_v in_o their_o own_o invention_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o truth_n of_o this_o god_n therefore_o when_o paul_n go_v about_o to_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a unto_o mutual_a consent_n he_o use_v this_o argument_n one_o god_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n etc._n etc._n 4.6_o ephes_n 4.6_o but_o when_o we_o see_v wicked_a man_n arise_v who_o go_v about_o both_o to_o divide_v the_o church_n by_o their_o faction_n and_o also_o either_o to_o corrupt_v the_o gospel_n with_o their_o false_a and_o filthy_a invention_n or_o else_o to_o bring_v the_o same_o in_o suspicion_n we_o ought_v to_o know_v the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n therefore_o paul_n say_v elsewhere_o that_o heresy_n come_v abroad_o that_o those_o who_o be_v try_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a 11.19_o 1._o cor._n 11.19_o and_o assure_o the_o lord_n do_v wonderful_o make_v void_a the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n in_o that_o he_o tri_v the_o faith_n of_o he_o by_o such_o trial_n and_o do_v beautify_v his_o word_n with_o worthy_a and_o excellent_a victory_n and_o cause_v the_o truth_n to_o shine_v more_o clearelie_o which_o the_o wicked_a go_v about_o to_o darken_v but_o it_o be_v very_o convenient_a to_o weigh_v all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o history_n which_o luke_n note_v which_o come_v down_o from_o judea_n this_o cloak_n and_o colour_n be_v very_o forceable_a to_o deceive_v even_o good_a man_n then_o jerusalem_n be_v honour_v not_o without_o cause_n among_o all_o church_n because_o they_o reverence_v it_o even_o as_o their_o mother_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v deduct_v as_o it_o be_v by_o pipe_n and_o conduit_n from_o that_o fountain_n these_o seducer_n come_v thence_o they_o pretend_v the_o apostle_n they_o boast_v that_o they_o bring_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o they_o learn_v of_o they_o they_o blind_a &_o blear_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o unskilful_a with_o this_o smoke_n &_o those_o who_o be_v light_a and_o wicked_a do_v greedy_o snatch_v at_o the_o colour_n which_o be_v offer_v they_o the_o perturbation_n of_o the_o church_n do_v like_o a_o tempest_n shake_v those_o who_o be_v otherwise_o good_a &_o moderate_a so_o that_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o stumble_v therefore_o we_o must_v note_v this_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n that_o he_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o holy_a man_n that_o he_o may_v deceive_v the_o simple_a who_o be_v win_v with_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o man_n dare_v not_o inquire_v after_o the_o thing_n itself_o luke_n do_v not_o express_v in_o deed_n with_o what_o affection_n these_o knave_n be_v move_v yet_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o perverse_a zeal_n be_v the_o cause_n which_o move_v they_o to_o set_v themselves_o against_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n for_o there_o be_v certain_a churlish_a nature_n which_o nothing_o can_v please_v but_o that_o which_o be_v their_o own_o they_o have_v see_v that_o circumcision_n and_o other_o rite_n of_o the_o law_n be_v observe_v at_o jerusalem_n whersoever_o they_o become_v 11.14_o ●_o cor._n 11.14_o they_o can_v abide_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a thereto_o as_o if_o the_o example_n of_o one_o church_n do_v bind_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n with_o a_o certain_a law_n and_o though_o such_o be_v carry_v with_o a_o preposterous_a zeal_n to_o procure_v tumult_n yet_o be_v they_o prick_v inward_o with_o their_o ambition_n &_o with_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o stubborness_n nevertheless_o satan_n have_v that_o he_o will_v for_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o godly_a have_v such_o a_o mist_n cast_v before_o they_o that_o they_o can_v scarce_o know_v black_a from_o white_a therefore_o we_o must_v beware_v first_o of_o this_o plague_n that_o some_o prescribe_v not_o a_o law_n to_o othersome_a after_o their_o manner_n that_o the_o example_n of_o one_o church_n be_v not_o a_o prejudice_n of_o a_o common_a rule_n also_o we_o must_v use_v another_o caution_n that_o the_o person_n of_o man_n do_v not_o hinder_v or_o darken_v the_o examination_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o cause_n for_o if_o satan_n transfigure_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n &_o if_o by_o sacrilegious_a boldness_n he_o usurp_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o he_o do_v like_o wicked_o deceive_v man_n under_o the_o name_n of_o holy_a man_n the_o end_n shall_v at_o length_n declare_v that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o lay_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o yet_o satan_n mean_v under_o this_o shift_n to_o get_v in_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o oftentimes_o that_o those_o who_o contrary_a the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n creep_v in_o under_o the_o title_n of_o his_o servant_n therefore_o there_o be_v one_o only_a remedy_n to_o come_v to_o search_v out_o the_o matter_n with_o sound_a judgement_n also_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o prevent_v a_o offence_n lest_o we_o think_v that_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n do_v therefore_o strive_v among_o themselves_o because_o satan_n do_v false_o abuse_v their_o name_n that_o he_o may_v set_v certain_a shadow_n by_o the_o care_n together_o to_o terrify_v the_o simple_a 2_o when_o there_o be_v sedition_n arisen_a this_o be_v no_o small_a trial_n in_o that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v hail_v into_o a_o troublesome_a tumult_n there_o be_v mischief_n enough_o already_o in_o the_o matter_n itself_o but_o it_o be_v a_o more_o cruel_a mischief_n when_o the_o contention_n wax_v so_o hot_a that_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o fight_v with_o their_o brethren_n as_o with_o enemy_n add_v moreover_o the_o infamy_n wherewith_o they_o see_v themselves_o burden_v among_o the_o simple_a and_o unskilful_a as_o if_o they_o will_v trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n with_o their_o stubborness_n for_o it_o fall_v out_o oftentimes_o so_o that_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n be_v envy_v alone_o and_o bear_v all_o the_o blame_n after_o that_o they_o have_v be_v unjust_o trouble_v &_o have_v faithful_o employ_v themselves_o in_o defence_n of_o a_o good_a cause_n therefore_o they_o must_v be_v endue_v with_o invincible_a courage_n to_o despise_v all_o false_a report_n which_o be_v carry_v about_o concern_v they_o therefore_o paul_n boast_v in_o a_o other_o place_n that_o he_o go_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o sedition_n but_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n must_v observe_v such_o moderation_n 6.5_o 2._o cor._n 6.5_o that_o they_o abhor_v so_o much_o as_o they_o can_v all_o discord_n if_o at_o any_o time_n satan_n raise_v tumult_n and_o contention_n let_v they_o endeavour_v to_o appease_v they_o and_o final_o let_v they_o do_v all_o that_o they_o can_v to_o foster_n and_o cherish_v unity_n but_o again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v assail_v let_v they_o refuse_v no_o cumbate_n for_o defence_n thereof_o ne_o let_v they_o fear_v to_o oppose_v themselves_o valiant_o though_o heaven_n and_o earth_n go_v together_o and_o let_v we_o be_v admonish_v by_o this_o example_n learn_v so_o often_o as_o there_o arise_v any_o tumult_n in_o the_o church_n wise_o to_o weigh_v through_o who_o fault_n it_o come_v lest_o we_o rash_o condenne_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n who_o gravity_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v praise_v because_o they_o can_v abide_v so_o valiant_o such_o violent_a assault_n of_o satan_n second_o let_v we_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o satan_n be_v bridle_v by_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v not_o put_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o foil_n for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v suffer_v to_o do_v hurt_v at_o his_o pleasure_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gentile_n have_v be_v pull_v down_o and_o overthrow_v the_o gospel_n preach_v by_o paul_n shall_v have_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o the_o gate_n shall_v have_v shut_v against_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n three_o let_v we_o learn_v that_o we_o must_v in_o time_n prevent_v dissension_n of_o what_o sort_n so_o ever_o it_o be_v lest_o it_o
break_v out_o into_o the_o flame_n of_o contention_n because_o satan_n seek_v nothing_o else_o by_o the_o fan_n of_o dissension_n but_o to_o kindle_v so_o many_o fire_n but_o again_o see_v we_o see_v the_o primitive_a church_n on_o a_o uproar_n and_o the_o best_a servant_n of_o christ_n exercise_v with_o sedition_n if_o the_o same_o thing_n befall_v we_o now_o let_v we_o not_o fear_v as_o in_o some_o new_a and_o unwonted_a matter_n but_o crave_v at_o the_o lord_n hand_n such_o a_o end_n as_o he_o now_o make_v let_v we_o pass_v through_o tumult_n with_o the_o same_o tenor_n of_o faith_n unless_o you_o be_v circumcise_a luke_n set_v down_o brief_o in_o these_o word_n the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o seducer_n go_v about_o to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n with_o necessity_n of_o keep_v the_o law_n circumcision_n be_v in_o deed_n mention_v alone_o in_o this_o place_n but_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o text_n that_o they_o move_v the_o question_n about_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n and_o because_o circumcision_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o solemn_a entrance_n and_o admission_n into_o other_o rite_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o by_o synecdoche_n the_o whole_a law_n be_v comprehend_v under_o one_o part_n these_o enemy_n of_o paul_n do_v not_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n but_o though_o they_o give_v he_o their_o name_n they_o retain_v therewithal_o the_o old_a ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n the_o error_n may_v have_v seem_v tolerable_a at_o the_o first_o glimpse_n why_o do_v not_o paul_n then_o dissemble_v at_o least_o for_o some_o short_a time_n lest_o he_o shake_v the_o church_n with_o conflict_n for_o the_o disputation_n be_v concern_v external_a matter_n concern_v which_o paul_n himself_o forbid_v elsewhere_o to_o stand_v and_o strive_v too_o much_o but_o there_o be_v three_o weighty_a cause_n which_o enforce_v he_o to_o gainestande_v for_o if_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o law_n be_v necessary_a man_n salvation_n be_v tie_v to_o work_n which_o must_v be_v ground_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n alone_o that_o the_o faith_n may_v be_v settle_v and_o quiet_a therefore_o when_o paul_n see_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o law_n set_v against_o the_o free_a righteousness_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o he_o to_o hold_v his_o peace_n unless_o he_o will_v betray_v christ_n for_o see_v the_o adversary_n do_v deny_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v save_v save_v he_o which_o do_v observe_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n by_o this_o mean_v they_o do_v translate_v unto_o work_n the_o glory_n of_o salvation_n which_o they_o take_v from_o christ_n &_o have_v shake_v assurance_n they_o do_v vex_v miserable_a soul_n with_o unquietness_n again_o it_o be_v no_o small_a thing_n neither_o of_o any_o small_a importance_n to_o spoil_v &_o rob_v faithful_a soul_n of_o the_o liberty_n get_v by_o christ_n blood_n though_o the_o inward_a liberty_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v common_a to_o the_o father_n as_o well_o as_o to_o we_o yet_o we_o know_v what_o paul_n say_v that_o they_o be_v shut_v up_o under_o the_o childish_a ward_n &_o custody_n of_o the_o law_n so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o much_o differ_v from_o servant_n 4.13_o gal._n 4.13_o but_o we_o be_v loose_a from_o the_o schoolemastership_n of_o the_o law_n after_o that_o christ_n be_v reveal_v &_o we_o have_v more_o liberty_n the_o time_n of_o our_o nonage_n be_v as_o it_o be_v end_v the_o three_o vice_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v because_o it_o darken_v the_o light_n of_o the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o do_v put_v in_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a cloud_n that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n may_v not_o give_v perfect_a light_n in_o sum_n christianity_n shall_v short_o have_v come_v to_o nothing_o if_o paul_n shall_v have_v yield_v to_o such_o beginning_n therefore_o he_o enter_v the_o cumbate_n not_o for_o the_o external_a uncircumcision_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o for_o the_o free_a salvation_n of_o man_n second_o that_o he_o may_v acquit_v and_o set_v free_a godly_a conscience_n from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gilt_n of_o eternal_a death_n last_o of_o all_o that_o after_o all_o hindrance_n be_v drive_v away_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n may_v shine_v as_o in_o a_o pleasant_a and_o clear_a heaven_n moreover_o these_o knave_n do_v great_a injury_n to_o the_o law_n when_o they_o do_v wicked_o corrupt_v the_o right_a use_n thereof_o this_o be_v the_o natural_a and_o right_a office_n of_o the_o law_n to_o lead_v man_n by_o the_o hand_n like_o a_o schoolmaster_n unto_o christ_n therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v worse_o corrupt_v then_o when_o under_o colour_n of_o it_o the_o power_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n be_v diminish_v after_o this_o sort_n must_v we_o look_v into_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o question_n lest_o by_o our_o silence_n we_o betray_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n so_o often_o as_o we_o see_v satan_n by_o his_o subtlety_n aim_v right_a at_o it_o neither_o let_v our_o mind_n be_v change_v and_o wax_v faint_a through_o any_o peril_n or_o reproach_n and_o slander_n because_o we_o must_v constant_o defend_v pure_a religion_n though_o heaven_n and_o earth_n must_v go_v together_o 2.24_o 2._o tim._n 2.24_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v no_o fighter_n therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o contention_n rise_v they_o must_v rather_o study_v to_o appease_v and_o pacify_v the_o same_o by_o their_o moderation_n than_o by_o and_o by_o to_o blow_v to_o the_o assault_n second_o they_o must_v take_v good_a heed_n of_o superfluous_a and_o vain_a conflict_n neither_o shall_v they_o handle_v controversy_n of_o any_o small_a weight_n but_o when_o they_o see_v satan_n wax_v so_o proud_a that_o religion_n can_v any_o long_o continue_v safe_a and_o sound_a unless_o he_o be_v prevent_v they_o must_v needs_o take_v a_o good_a hart_n to_o they_o and_o rise_v to_o resist_v neither_o let_v they_o fear_v to_o enter_v even_o most_o hateful_a cumbate_n the_o name_n of_o peace_n be_v in_o deed_n plausible_a and_o sweet_a but_o curse_a be_v that_o peace_n which_o be_v purchase_v with_o so_o great_a loss_n that_o we_o suffer_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n to_o perish_v by_o which_o alone_o we_o grow_v together_o into_o godly_a and_o holy_a unity_n the_o papist_n cause_v we_o at_o this_o day_n to_o be_v sore_o hate_v as_o if_o we_o have_v be_v the_o causer_n of_o deadly_a tumult_n wherewith_o the_o world_n be_v shake_v but_o we_o can_v well_o defend_v ourselves_o because_o the_o blasphemy_n which_o we_o endeavour_v to_o reprove_v be_v more_o cruel_a than_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o hold_v our_o peace_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o we_o have_v take_v upon_o we_o to_o enter_v cumbate_n in_o defence_n of_o that_o cause_n for_o which_o we_o be_v to_o fight_v even_o with_o the_o very_a angel_n let_v they_o cry_v till_o their_o throat_n be_v sore_o paul_n his_o example_n be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o we_o must_v not_o be_v either_o cold_a or_o slack_a in_o defend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n when_o the_o minister_n of_o satan_n seek_v to_o overthrow_v it_o with_o might_n and_o main_a for_o their_o brainsick_a distemperature_n ought_v not_o to_o pass_v the_o constancy_n of_o the_o seruamt_n of_o god_n when_o paul_n do_v zealous_o set_v himself_o against_o the_o false_a apostle_n sedition_n begin_v at_o length_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o conflict_n and_o yet_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o therefore_o reprove_v he_o but_o do_v rather_o with_o due_a praise_n commend_v that_o fortitude_n which_o he_o have_v give_v that_o holy_a man_n they_o determine_v etc._n etc._n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o this_o remedy_n to_o appease_v the_o tumult_n which_o may_v otherwise_o have_v go_v far_o with_o do_v much_o hurt_n whereby_o we_o be_v also_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v always_o seek_v such_o mean_n as_o be_v fit_a for_o end_v discord_n because_o god_n do_v so_o high_o commend_v peace_n let_v the_o faithful_a show_n that_o they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o nourish_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n the_o truth_n must_v always_o be_v first_o in_o order_n with_o they_o in_o defence_n whereof_o they_o must_v be_v afraid_a of_o no_o tumult_n yet_o they_o must_v so_o temper_v their_o heat_n that_o they_o refuse_v no_o mean_n of_o godly_a agreement_n yea_o let_v they_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n invent_v what_o way_n so_o ever_o they_o can_v and_o let_v they_o be_v witty_a in_o seek_v they_o out_o therefore_o we_o must_v observe_v this_o mean_a lest_o be_v carry_v away_o through_o immoderate_a vehemency_n of_o zeal_n we_o be_v carry_v beyond_o the_o just_a bound_n for_o we_o must_v be_v courageous_a in_o defence_n of_o true_a doctrine_n not_o stubborn_a nor_o rash_a
therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o join_v together_o these_o two_o virtue_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n commend_v in_o paul_n when_o he_o be_v draw_v into_o the_o field_n by_o the_o wicked_a he_o be_v not_o afraid_a bold_o to_o offer_v himself_o but_o when_o he_o do_v meek_o admit_v the_o remedy_n which_o be_v offer_v he_o declare_v plain_o what_o small_a desire_n he_o have_v to_o fight_v for_o otherwise_o he_o may_v have_v boast_v that_o he_o do_v not_o pass_v for_o the_o apostle_n &_o so_o have_v stand_v stout_o in_o that_o but_o the_o desire_n of_o peace_n do_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o refuse_v their_o judgement_n moreover_o ignorant_a and_o weak_a man_n shall_v have_v conceive_v a_o sinister_a opinion_n if_o they_o shall_v have_v see_v two_o man_n only_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o godly_a teacher_n must_v in_o no_o case_n neglect_v this_o way_n to_o cherish_v faith_n that_o they_o may_v show_v that_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n paul_n in_o deed_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o beck_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o will_v change_v his_o opinion_n if_o he_o shall_v have_v find_v they_o contrary_a to_o he_o who_o will_v not_o have_v give_v place_n even_o to_o the_o very_a angel_n 1.8_o gal._n 1.8_o as_o he_o boast_v in_o first_o chapt._n to_o the_o galathian_o but_o least_o the_o wicked_a shall_v slanderous_o report_v that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n that_o stand_v too_o much_o in_o his_o own_o conceit_n and_o which_o be_v too_o proud_a &_o which_o do_v please_v himself_o with_o a_o unseemly_a contempt_n of_o all_o man_n he_o offer_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o doctrine_n as_o it_o become_v he_o &_o as_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o church_n second_o he_o present_v himself_o before_o the_o apostle_n with_o sure_a hope_n of_o victory_n because_o he_o know_v full_a well_o what_o will_v be_v their_o judgement_n see_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n wherewith_o he_o be_v govern_v notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v for_o what_o purpose_n the_o man_n of_o antioch_n send_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n unto_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o they_o do_v so_o great_o reverence_v they_o that_o they_o stand_v in_o doubt_n until_o they_o have_v give_v judgement_n on_o this_o side_n or_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v hitherto_o vain_a and_o altogether_o none_o but_o the_o answer_n be_v easy_a see_v they_o know_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v by_o christ_n alone_o with_o the_o same_o commandment_n and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n give_v they_o they_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o the_o end_n &_o success_n and_o undoubted_o this_o counsel_n proceed_v from_o honest_a &_o stout_a man_n who_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o knave_n do_v false_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o james_n &_o peter_n wherefore_o they_o seek_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v further_o a_o good_a matter_n with_o their_o consent_n to_o the_o same_o end_n be_v all_o holy_a synod_n assemble_v since_o the_o beginning_n that_o grave_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v well_o exercise_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v decide_v controversy_n not_o after_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n this_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n lest_o the_o papist_n pierce_v any_o man_n with_o their_o loud_a outcry_n who_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v overthrow_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n and_o put_v out_o all_o the_o light_n of_o godliness_n thrust_v upon_o we_o counsel_n as_o if_o every_o definition_n &_o determination_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v count_v a_o heavenly_a oracle_n but_o if_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v their_o fit_v at_o this_o day_n they_o will_v cry_v with_o one_o mouth_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unlawful_a for_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o mean_v any_o thing_n less_o than_o to_o set_v down_o or_o deliver_v any_o thing_n without_o have_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n for_o their_o guide_n who_o be_v their_o only_a teacher_n even_o as_o he_o be_v we_o i_o omit_v this_o that_o the_o papist_n lean_a only_a unto_o untimely_a counsel_n which_o breath_n out_o nothing_o but_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o barbarism_n but_o even_o the_o best_a &_o most_o choice_n must_v be_v reckon_v in_o that_o number_n that_o they_o may_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v a_o grievous_a complaint_n of_o gregory_n nazianzene_n extant_a that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o council_n which_o have_v a_o good_a end_n what_o excellency_n so_o ever_o do_v flourish_n and_o be_v in_o force_n in_o the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o begin_v to_o decay_v a_o hundred_o year_n after_o therefore_o if_o that_o holy_a man_n be_v now_o live_v how_o stout_o will_v he_o reject_v the_o toy_n of_o the_o papist_n who_o without_o all_o shame_n most_o impudent_o bring_v in_o the_o juggling_n of_o visure_n in_o steed_n of_o lawful_a counsel_n and_o that_o to_o that_o end_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v pack_v so_o soon_o as_o a_o few_o bald_a and_o foolish_a man_n have_v set_v down_o whatsoever_o please_v they_o 3_o be_v bring_v on_o the_o way_n by_o the_o church_n where_o as_o by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v join_v to_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n companion_n who_o may_v for_o duty_n sake_n conduct_v they_o we_o may_v thereby_o gather_v that_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v on_o their_o side_n &_o that_o they_o do_v never_o otherwise_o think_v but_o that_o the_o cause_n be_v they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o apostle_n wherefore_o they_o determine_v the_o journey_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n with_o like_a mind_n as_o they_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v tame_v and_o put_v to_o silence_v those_o troublesome_a spirit_n who_o do_v false_o make_v boast_n of_o the_o apostle_n whereas_o he_o say_v short_o after_o that_o they_o certify_v the_o brethren_n in_o their_o voyage_n of_o the_o wonderful_a conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v a_o testimony_n &_o token_n that_o they_o come_v not_o to_o jerusalem_n fraught_v with_o fear_n but_o that_o they_o do_v even_o without_o fear_n stout_o profess_v that_o which_o they_o have_v teach_v before_o therefore_o they_o come_v not_o to_o plead_v their_o cause_n before_o their_o judge_n but_o that_o they_o may_v with_o common_a consent_n and_o judgement_n on_o both_o side_n approve_v that_o which_o be_v command_v by_o god_n touch_v the_o abolish_n of_o ceremony_n for_o though_o they_o do_v not_o despise_v the_o iugement_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o because_o they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o neither_o for_o the_o apostle_n to_o decree_v otherwise_o concern_v the_o cause_n it_o do_v not_o become_v they_o to_o stand_v as_o man_n who_o matter_n be_v handle_v at_o the_o bar_n thence_o come_v the_o boldness_n of_o rejoice_v to_o this_o end_n tend_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o godly_a whereby_o they_o subscribe_v both_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n &_o also_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n 4_o they_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n by_o this_o word_n church_n he_o mean_v the_o multitude_n itself_o and_o the_o whole_a body_n that_o do_v he_o assign_v a_o peculiar_a place_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n by_o who_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v special_o receive_v furthermore_o because_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o certain_a place_n of_o abode_n at_o jerusalem_n but_o go_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o sometime_o to_o one_o place_n and_o sometime_o to_o another_o whither_o soever_o occasion_n do_v call_v they_o that_o church_n have_v elder_n to_o who_o the_o ordinary_a government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v 14.23_o chr._n 14.23_o and_o what_o the_o one_o function_n differ_v from_o the_o other_o we_o have_v before_o declare_v and_o hereby_o it_o appear_v what_o brotherly_a courtesy_n there_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n because_o they_o do_v not_o only_o courteous_o receive_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o hear_v what_o success_n they_o have_v with_o their_o pain_n they_o take_v they_o magnify_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n luke_n repeat_v again_o that_o form_n of_o speech_n which_o we_o have_v before_o in_o the_o chapter_n next_o go_v before_o when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o declare_v whatsoever_o thing_n god_n have_v do_v with_o they_o wherein_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o which_o i_o say_v before_o that_o god_n be_v not_o make_v a_o fellow_n labourer_n but_o all_o the_o whole_a praise_n of_o the_o work_n be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o do_v that_o with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n which_o he_o do_v by_o they_o as_o he_o be_v say_v to_o deal_v merciful_o with_o we_o when_o he_o help_v our_o misery_n 5_o
get_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o free_a forgiveness_n of_o sin_n which_o by_o pacify_v and_o appease_v god_n do_v make_v he_o of_o a_o enemy_n or_o severe_a judge_n and_o which_o can_v be_v please_v nor_o entreat_v a_o merciful_a father_n i_o confess_v indeed_o that_o we_o be_v regenerate_v into_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n but_o when_o we_o be_v about_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n then_o must_v we_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o free_a adoption_n alone_o which_o be_v join_v with_o the_o purge_n &_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o if_o work_n be_v admit_v that_o they_o may_v make_v we_o righteous_a even_o in_o part_n only_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o be_v break_v and_o so_o peter_n his_o contrariety_n shall_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n or_o else_o be_v dissolve_v even_o as_o they_o peter_n do_v testify_v in_o this_o place_n that_o though_o the_o servitude_n of_o the_o law_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v the_o external_a show_n yet_o be_v their_o conscience_n free_a and_o quit_v whereby_o be_v put_v away_o that_o absurdity_n which_o may_v otherwise_o have_v trouble_v godly_a mind_n not_o a_o little_a for_o see_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o life_n be_v eternal_a and_o the_o same_o which_o god_n make_v with_o his_o servant_n from_o the_o begin_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n &_o untollerable_a that_o any_o other_o way_n to_o obtain_v salvation_n shall_v be_v teach_v at_o this_o day_n then_o that_o which_o the_o father_n have_v in_o time_n past_a therefore_o peter_n affirm_v that_o we_o agree_v very_o well_o with_o the_o father_n because_o they_o no_o less_o than_o we_o repose_v hope_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o reconcile_a the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n together_o as_o touch_v the_o end_n of_o the_o doctrine_n he_o take_v from_o the_o jew_n the_o stumble_a block_n which_o they_o feign_v to_o themselves_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o discord_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o law_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o father_n that_o they_o may_v thereby_o purchase_v salvation_n neither_o be_v the_o ceremony_n add_v that_o by_o the_o observe_v thereof_o they_o may_v attain_v unto_o righteousness_n but_o this_o be_v the_o only_a end_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a law_n that_o cast_v from_o they_o all_o confidence_n which_o they_o may_v repose_v in_o work_n they_o may_v repose_v all_o their_o hope_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n whereby_o be_v also_o refute_v the_o dote_n of_o those_o who_o think_v that_o the_o old_a people_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v content_a with_o earthly_a good_n do_v think_v no_o whit_n of_o the_o heavenly_a life_n but_o peter_n make_v the_o father_n partner_n with_o we_o of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o do_v make_v salvation_n common_a to_o both_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v some_o which_o delight_n in_o that_o brainsick_a fellow_n seruetus_fw-la with_o his_o so_o filthy_a sacrilege_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v that_o peter_n teach_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n be_v always_o ground_v in_o christ_n see_v that_o they_o can_v neither_o find_v life_n any_o where_o else_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o way_n for_o man_n to_o come_v unto_o god_n therefore_o this_o place_n agree_v with_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n christ_n yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n 13.8_o heb._n 13.8_o and_o for_o ever_o 12_o and_o all_o the_o multitude_n keep_v silence_n and_o hear_v barnabas_n and_o paul_n declare_v what_o sign_n &_o wonder_n god_n have_v wrought_v by_o they_o among_o the_o gentile_n 13_o and_o after_o that_o they_o have_v do_v speak_v james_n answer_v say_v man_n &_o brethren_n hear_v i_o 14_o simeon_n have_v show_v how_o at_o the_o first_o god_n have_v visit_v that_o he_o may_v take_v of_o the_o gentile_n a_o people_n in_o his_o name_n 15_o and_o hereunto_o agree_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 16_o after_o these_o thing_n i_o will_v return_v and_o will_v build_v again_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o david_n which_o be_v decay_v and_o i_o will_v restore_v the_o ruin_n thereof_o and_o will_v set_v it_o up_o 17_o that_o the_o man_n which_o remain_v may_v seek_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o nation_n which_o call_v upon_o my_o name_n say_v the_o lord_n which_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n 18_o know_v from_o the_o beginning_n be_v all_o his_o work_n 12_o all_o the_o multitude_n hold_v their_o peace_n by_o these_o word_n luke_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v so_o reign_v in_o that_o assembly_n that_o they_o yield_v forth_o with_o to_o reason_n the_o disputation_n be_v hot_o before_o but_o now_o after_o that_o peter_n have_v lay_v open_a the_o counsel_n of_o god_n &_o have_v handle_v the_o question_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o &_o by_o all_o noise_n be_v stay_v they_o be_v quiet_a and_o whist_a who_o do_v of_o late_o unaduised_o defend_v the_o error_n this_o be_v a_o lively_a image_n of_o a_o lawful_a counsel_n when_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n alone_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v once_o come_v to_o light_v make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o controversy_n and_o assure_o it_o be_v effectual_a enough_o to_o appease_v all_o discord_n when_o the_o spirit_n bear_v the_o chief_a sway_n because_o he_o be_v again_o a_o fit_a governor_n as_o well_o to_o moderate_v their_o tongue_n who_o must_v speak_v before_o other_o as_o to_o keep_v the_o rest_n under_o obedience_n that_o they_o be_v not_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o themselves_o and_o wed_v to_o their_o own_o will_n but_o that_o lay_v away_o stubbornness_n they_o may_v show_v themselves_o obedient_a to_o god_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o few_o which_o will_v not_o yield_v as_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o a_o great_a assembly_n yet_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n so_o that_o the_o silence_n whereof_o luke_n speak_v be_v a_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o common_a obedience_n and_o this_o be_v no_o small_a moderation_n in_o peter_n in_o that_o have_v suffer_v every_o one_o to_o say_v for_o himself_o what_o he_o can_v he_o defer_v his_o judgement_n lest_o it_o shall_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o other_o so_o long_o until_o the_o question_n have_v be_v thorough_o discuss_v too_o and_o fro_o they_o hear_v barnabas_n and_o paul_n we_o may_v gather_v by_o these_o word_n that_o they_o be_v not_o hear_v with_o silence_n before_o for_o see_v that_o the_o more_o part_n be_v persuade_v that_o they_o do_v wicked_o admit_v the_o profane_a gentile_n into_o the_o church_n there_o shall_v nothing_o which_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v have_v be_v patient_o receive_v until_o this_o false_a opinion_n be_v correct_v &_o reform_v but_o all_o shall_v have_v be_v take_v at_o the_o worst_a we_o see_v what_o a_o poison_n displeasure_n conceive_v for_o no_o cause_n be_v which_o do_v so_o possess_v man_n mind_n that_o it_o stop_v the_o way_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n can_v never_o have_v entrance_n hereby_o we_o learn_v how_o true_a that_o say_n be_v all_o thing_n be_v sound_a to_o the_o sound_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o wholesome_a but_o corrupt_a affection_n do_v turn_v the_o same_o in_o to_o that_o which_o be_v hurtful_a 1.15_o tit._n 1.15_o and_o to_o this_o end_n tend_v the_o narration_n make_v by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n that_o they_o may_v show_v &_o prove_v that_o god_n do_v allow_v their_o apostleship_n among_o the_o gentile_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v ratify_v and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a seal_n thereof_o 13_o james_n answer_v say_v some_o old_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n think_v that_o this_o james_n be_v one_o of_o the_o disciple_n who_o syrname_n be_v justus_n and_o oblia_n who_o cruel_a death_n be_v record_v by_o josephus_n in_o the_o twenty_o book_n of_o his_o antiquity_n but_o will_v to_o god_n the_o old_a writer_n have_v travel_v rather_o to_o know_v the_o man_n than_o to_o set_v forth_o with_o feign_a praise_n the_o holiness_n of_o a_o man_n who_o they_o know_v not_o it_o be_v a_o childish_a toy_n &_o surmise_n in_o that_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o alone_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o most_o holy_a place_n for_o if_o in_o that_o enter_v in_o there_o have_v be_v any_o religion_n he_o have_v do_v it_o contrary_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n second_o it_o be_v a_o superstitious_a thing_n thus_o to_o foster_v the_o shadowishe_a worship_n of_o the_o temple_n i_o omit_v other_o trifle_n and_o they_o be_v great_o deceive_v in_o that_o they_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o 12._o
silas_n see_v they_o be_v also_o prophet_n do_v with_o many_o word_n comfort_n word_n or_o they_o do_v comfort_n exhort_v the_o brethren_n and_o strengthen_v they_o 33_o and_o they_o tarry_v there_o for_o a_o time_n and_o then_o they_o be_v let_v go_v by_o the_o brethren_n in_o peace_n unto_o the_o apostle_n 34_o but_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o silas_n to_o stay_v there_o 35_o and_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n stay_v at_o antiochia_n teach_v and_o preach_v with_o many_o i_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n 30_o when_o the_o multitude_n be_v gather_v this_o be_v the_o most_o lawful_a kind_n of_o deal_v to_o admit_v the_o whole_a multitude_n unto_o the_o read_n of_o the_o epistle_n for_o if_o there_o fall_v out_o any_o controversy_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o judgement_n be_v refer_v over_o unto_o the_o learned_a and_o godly_a &_o to_o such_o as_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o chief_o to_o the_o pastor_n right_o ordain_v notwithstanding_o because_o it_o belong_v to_o all_o alike_o to_o know_v for_o a_o surety_n what_o they_o must_v hold_v the_o godly_a and_o learned_a teacher_n must_v make_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n what_o they_o have_v set_v down_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unfitting_a for_o holy_a and_o christian_a order_n than_o to_o drive_v away_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n from_o common_a doctrine_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o heerd_v of_o swine_n as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o popery_n for_o because_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o horn_a bishop_n do_v think_v that_o the_o people_n will_v never_o be_v obedient_a enough_o until_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o gross_a ignorance_n they_o imagine_v that_o this_o be_v the_o best_a summarie_n of_o faith_n to_o know_v nothing_o but_o to_o depend_v whole_o upon_o their_o decree_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a there_o must_v be_v a_o mean_v observe_v that_o lawful_a government_n may_v continue_v and_o that_o on_o the_o otherside_n the_o people_n may_v have_v that_o liberty_n which_o unto_o they_o belong_v lest_o they_o be_v oppress_v like_o slave_n 31_o they_o rejoice_v over_o the_o consolation_n see_v that_o the_o epistle_n be_v so_o short_a and_o contain_v nothing_o but_o a_o bare_a narration_n what_o consolation_n can_v they_o have_v by_o it_o but_o we_o must_v note_v that_o there_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n of_o consolation_n therein_o because_o when_o they_o know_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o be_v all_o pacify_v and_o also_o whereas_o before_o there_o be_v variance_n among_o they_o they_o be_v now_o reconcile_v one_o to_o another_o see_v there_o go_v a_o false_a report_n about_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v against_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n this_o same_o have_v shake_v some_o who_o be_v too_o light_a of_o belief_n many_o do_v stand_v in_o doubt_n the_o wicked_a abuse_v this_o occasion_n to_o speak_v evil_a othersome_a be_v prick_v forward_o with_o love_n of_o novalty_n and_o with_o curiosity_n and_o one_o be_v set_v against_o another_o but_o now_o after_o that_o they_o see_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o first_o church_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n they_o obtain_v that_o for_o which_o the_o child_n of_o god_n ought_v most_o to_o wish_v that_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o right_a faith_n and_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n among_o themselves_o they_o may_v with_o quiet_a mind_n have_v peace_n one_o with_o another_o 32_o judas_n and_o silas_n these_o two_o brethren_n be_v send_v for_o this_o cause_n that_o they_o may_v also_o testify_v the_o same_o thing_n by_o word_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o letter_n and_o more_o also_o otherwise_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v send_v such_o short_a letter_n concern_v so_o great_a and_o weighty_a a_o matter_n and_o they_o will_v have_v also_o speak_v somewhat_o touch_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o will_v have_v make_v some_o long_a exhortation_n wherein_o they_o will_v have_v persuade_v they_o unto_o the_o study_n of_o godliness_n now_o luke_n show_v some_o far_a thing_n by_o they_o do_v to_o wit_n that_o be_v furnish_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n they_o edify_v the_o church_n in_o general_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v they_o do_v not_o only_o do_v their_o duty_n faithful_o in_o the_o cause_n which_o be_v now_o in_o hand_n but_o they_o do_v also_o take_v good_a and_o profitable_a pain_n in_o teach_v and_o exhort_v the_o church_n and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o say_v that_o they_o exhort_v the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v prophet_n for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n common_a to_o all_o man_n to_o enter_v such_o a_o excellent_a function_n therefore_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o any_o man_n pass_v his_o bound_n as_o paul_n teach_v 1._o cor._n 7._o and_o ephesian_n 4._o 4.1_o 1._o cor._n 7.20_o ephes_n 4.1_o that_o every_o one_o keep_v himself_o within_o the_o measure_n of_o grace_n receive_v wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v be_v peculiar_a lest_o any_o man_n through_o ambition_n be_v void_a of_o hability_n or_o through_o rash_a zeal_n or_o through_o any_o other_o foolish_a desire_n covet_v to_o put_v out_o his_o head_n trouble_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v prophet_n whereas_o the_o word_n have_v diverse_a signification_n it_o be_v not_o take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o those_o prophet_n to_o who_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v because_o this_o title_n shall_v come_v in_o out_o of_o season_n when_o he_o intreat_v of_o another_o matter_n but_o luke_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o judas_n and_o silas_n be_v endue_v with_o excellent_a knowledge_n and_o understanding_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v be_v good_a interpreter_n of_o god_n as_o paul_n in_o the_o forteenth_n of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o intreat_v of_o the_o prophecy_n 14.3_o 1._o cor._n 14.3_o and_o prefer_v it_o before_o all_o other_o gift_n speak_v not_o of_o foretell_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o he_o commend_v it_o for_o this_o fruit_n because_o it_o do_v edify_v the_o church_n by_o doctrine_n exhortation_n &_o consolation_n after_o this_o manner_n do_v luke_n assign_v exhortation_n to_o the_o prophet_n as_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o their_o office_n 33_o they_o be_v let_v go_v in_o peace_n that_o be_v when_o they_o depart_v the_o brethren_n in_o take_v their_o leave_n of_o they_o do_v wish_v they_o well_o as_o friend_n use_v to_o do_v and_o there_o be_v synecdoche_n in_o this_o member_n because_o the_o one_o of_o the_o two_o do_v only_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o the_o text_n there_o be_v a_o correction_n add_v immediate_o that_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o silas_n to_o tarry_v there_o but_o when_o luke_n join_v they_o both_o together_o his_o meaning_n be_v only_o to_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v quiet_a before_o they_o think_v upon_o any_o return_v at_o length_n he_o add_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v at_o antioch_n give_v themselves_o to_o teach_v and_o do_v continue_v in_o this_o work_n and_o yet_o do_v they_o give_v place_n to_o many_o mo_z whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o have_v all_o one_o &_o the_o same_o desire_n without_o grudge_v so_o that_o they_o join_v hand_n in_o hand_n to_o do_v good_a though_o it_o seem_v that_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o many_o more_o of_o set_a purpose_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o after_o that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v depart_v that_o church_n be_v destitute_a which_o do_v flourish_v in_o abundance_n of_o teacher_n moreover_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n which_o begin_v straightway_o to_o appear_v again_o in_o that_o church_n be_v now_o again_o commend_v and_o extol_v which_o church_n satan_n go_v about_o by_o his_o minister_n miserable_o to_o scatter_v and_o lay_v waist_n 36_o and_o after_o a_o few_o day_n paul_n say_v to_o barnabas_n return_v let_v we_o now_o visit_v our_o brethren_n throughout_o all_o city_n wherein_o we_o have_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v how_o they_o do_v 37_o and_o barnabas_n counsel_v to_o take_v john_n who_o syrname_n be_v mark_n 38_o but_o paul_n beseech_v he_o that_o he_o which_o slide_v back_o from_o they_o in_o pamphilia_n and_o have_v not_o go_v with_o they_o to_o the_o work_n may_v not_o be_v take_v to_o their_o company_n 39_o and_o the_o contention_n wax_v so_o hot_a between_o they_o that_o they_o part_v company_n and_o barnabas_n have_v take_v to_o he_o mark_v sail_v to_o cyprus_n 40_o but_o paul_n have_v choose_v silas_n iorney_v be_v commit_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o the_o brethren_n 41_o and_o he_o go_v through_o syria_n and_o
cilicia_n establish_v the_o church_n 36_o let_v we_o visit_v our_o brethren_n in_o this_o history_n we_o must_v first_o note_v how_o careful_a paul_n be_v for_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v ordain_v he_o labour_v in_o deed_n at_o antiochia_n profitable_o but_o because_o he_o remember_v that_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n ordain_v of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o pastor_n of_o one_o particular_a place_n he_o keep_v the_o course_n of_o his_o call_n second_o as_o it_o do_v not_o become_v he_o to_o be_v tie_v to_o one_o place_n so_o he_o think_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o all_o who_o he_o beget_v in_o the_o lord_n therefore_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o want_v his_o help_n moreover_o the_o work_n that_o be_v begin_v in_o those_o place_n can_v not_o be_v neglect_v but_o it_o will_v short_o after_o decay_n yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o paul_n stay_v still_o in_o the_o church_n of_o antiochia_n until_o he_o see_v the_o estate_n thereof_o well_o order_v and_o concord_n establish_v for_o we_o know_v and_o try_v what_o great_a force_n principal_a church_n have_v to_o keep_v other_o lesser_a church_n in_o order_n if_o there_o arise_v any_o tumult_n in_o a_o obscure_a street_n or_o if_o there_o fall_v out_o any_o offence_n the_o rumour_n go_v not_o so_o far_o neither_o be_v the_o neighbour_n so_o much_o move_v but_o if_o any_o place_n be_v excellent_a it_o can_v quail_v without_o great_a ruin_n or_o at_o least_o but_o that_o the_o lesser_a building_n shall_v be_v therewith_o sore_o shake_v both_o far_a and_o wide_o therefore_o paul_n in_o stay_v a_o time_n at_o antioch_n do_v provide_v for_o other_o church_n and_o so_o we_o must_v no_o less_o look_v unto_o his_o wisdom_n than_o his_o diligence_n in_o this_o example_n because_o oftentimes_o the_o immoderate_a heat_n of_o the_o pastor_n in_o go_v about_o matter_n do_v no_o less_o hurt_n than_o their_o sluggishness_n how_o they_o do_v paul_n know_v that_o amid_o so_o great_a lightness_n and_o inconstancy_n of_o man_n and_o as_o their_o nature_n be_v incline_v to_o vice_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n well_o order_v among_o they_o it_o do_v seldom_o continue_v stable_n &_o for_o any_o long_a time_n and_o especial_o that_o church_n do_v easy_o decay_v or_o grow_v out_o of_o kind_n unless_o they_o be_v look_v too_o continual_o there_o ought_v nothing_o under_o heaven_n to_o be_v more_o firm_a than_o the_o spiritual_a build_n of_o faith_n who_o stability_n be_v ground_v in_o the_o very_a heaven_n yet_o there_o be_v but_o few_o in_o who_o mind_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v thorough_o take_v lively_a root_n therefore_o firmness_n be_v rare_a in_o man_n again_o even_o those_o who_o have_v their_o anchor_n firm_o fix_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n do_v not_o cease_v notwithstanding_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o diverse_a toss_n whereby_o though_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o overturn_v yet_o have_v it_o need_v of_o strengthen_v that_o it_o may_v be_v underprop_a and_o stay_v moreover_o we_o see_v how_o sathan_n do_v assault_v and_o with_o what_o subtle_a shift_n he_o go_v about_o privy_o to_o pull_v down_o sometime_o whole_a church_n sometime_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a particular_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o paul_n be_v so_o careful_a for_o his_o scholar_n lest_o they_o behave_v themselves_o otherwise_o then_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v and_o therefore_o be_v he_o desirous_a in_o time_n to_o prevent_v if_o there_o be_v any_o inconvenience_n rise_v which_o can_v be_v until_o he_o have_v take_v view_n 37_o and_o barnabas_n give_v counsel_n luke_n do_v here_o set_v down_o that_o doleful_a disagreement_n which_o ought_v to_o make_v all_o the_o godly_a afraid_a for_o just_a cause_n the_o society_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o heavenly_a oracle_n they_o have_v long_a time_n labour_v be_v of_o one_o mind_n under_o this_o yoke_n whereunto_o the_o lord_n have_v tie_v they_o they_o have_v by_o many_o e●●eriences_n try_v the_o excellent_a favour_n of_o god_n yea_o that_o wonderful_a success_n mention_v heretofore_o by_o luke_n be_v a_o manifest_a blessing_n of_o god_n though_o they_o have_v be_v almost_o drown_v so_o often_o in_o so_o many_o tempest_n of_o persecution_n and_o be_v set_v upon_o so_o sore_o by_o infinite_a enemy_n though_o domestical_a sedition_n be_v every_o where_o kindle_v against_o they_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v pull_v in_o sunder_o that_o their_o agreement_n be_v then_o most_o of_o all_o try_v but_o now_o for_o a_o light_a matter_n and_o which_o may_v easy_o have_v be_v end_v they_o break_v that_o holy_a bond_n of_o god_n call_v this_o can_v not_o fall_v out_o without_o great_a perturbance_n to_o all_o the_o godly_a see_v that_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o contention_n be_v so_o great_a and_o vehement_a in_o these_o holy_a man_n who_o have_v long_a time_n accustom_v themselves_o to_o suffer_v all_o thing_n what_o shall_v befall_v we_o who_o affection_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o so_o bring_v to_o obey_v god_n do_v oftentimes_o rage_v without_o modesty_n see_v that_o a_o light_a occasion_n do_v separate_v they_o who_o have_v long_a time_n amid_o so_o great_a trial_n retain_v unity_n holy_o how_o easy_o may_v satan_n cause_v those_o to_o be_v divide_v who_o have_v either_o none_n or_o at_o least_o a_o cold_a desire_n to_o foster_v peace_n what_o great_a pride_n be_v it_o for_o barnabas_n who_o have_v no_o more_o honourable_a thing_n than_o to_o be_v paul_n his_o companion_n that_o he_o may_v behave_v himself_o like_o a_o son_n towards_o his_o father_n so_o stubberne_o to_o refuse_v his_o counsel_n peradventure_o also_o some_o may_v think_v that_o paul_n be_v not_o very_o courteous_a in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o forgive_v a_o faithful_a helper_n this_o fault_n therefore_o we_o be_v admonish_v by_o this_o example_n that_o unless_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n take_v great_a heed_n there_o be_v many_o chink_n through_o which_o satan_n will_v creep_v in_o to_o disturb_v that_o concord_n which_o be_v among_o they_o but_o now_o we_o must_v examine_v the_o cause_n itself_o for_o some_o there_o be_v who_o lie_v the_o blame_n of_o the_o disagreement_n upon_o paul_n and_o at_o the_o first_o hear_n the_o reason_n which_o they_o bring_v seem_v probable_a john_n mark_n be_v reject_v because_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o paul_n company_n but_o he_o fall_v not_o away_o from_o christ_n a_o young_a man_n be_v as_o yet_o unacquainted_a with_o bear_v the_o cross_n return_v home_o from_o his_o journey_n he_o be_v somewhat_o to_o be_v bear_v with_o for_o his_o age_n be_v a_o freshwater_n soldier_n he_o faint_v in_o trouble_n even_o at_o the_o first_o dash_n he_o be_v not_o therefore_o about_o to_o be_v a_o slothful_a soldier_n during_o his_o whole_a life_n now_o forasmuch_o as_o his_o return_v to_o paul_n be_v a_o excellent_a testimony_n of_o repentance_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o discourtesy_n to_o reject_v he_o for_o those_o must_v be_v handle_v more_o courteous_o who_o punish_v themselves_o for_o their_o own_o offence_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n there_o be_v also_o other_o cause_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v make_v paul_n more_o courteous_a the_o house_n of_o john_n mark_n be_v a_o famous_a inn_n 12.12_o sup._n 12.12_o his_o mother_n have_v entertain_v the_o faithful_a in_o most_o grievous_a persecution_n when_o herod_n &_o all_o the_o people_n be_v in_o a_o rage_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o have_v their_o secret_a meeting_n there_o as_o luke_n report_v before_o sure_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v bear_v with_o such_o a_o holy_a &_o courageous_a woman_n least_o immoderate_a rigour_n shall_v alienate_v she_o she_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v her_o son_n addict_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n now_o what_o a_o great_a grief_n may_v it_o have_v be_v to_o she_o that_o his_o pain_n &_o industry_n shall_v be_v refuse_v for_o one_o light_a fault_n &_o now_o whereas_o john_n mark_n do_v not_o only_o bewail_v his_o fault_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n amend_v the_o same_o barnabas_n have_v a_o fair_a colour_n why_o he_o shall_v pardon_v he_o yet_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o text_n that_o the_o church_n do_v allow_v paul_n counsel_n for_o barnabas_n depart_v and_o with_o his_o companion_n he_o sail_v into_o cyprus_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o brethren_n as_o if_o he_o have_v depart_v privy_o without_o take_v his_o leave_n but_o the_o brethren_n commend_v paul_n in_o their_o prayer_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o appear_v thar_z the_o church_n stand_v on_o his_o side_n second_o whereas_o god_n show_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o blessing_n paul_n &_o do_v bless_v his_o labour_n with_o happy_a success_n of_o his_o grace_n &_o leave_v barnabas_n as_o it_o be_v
word_n sabaoth_o that_o luke_n speak_v of_o the_o jew_n second_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o commend_v the_o godliness_n of_o lydia_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o she_o be_v a_o jewesse_n which_o matter_n need_v no_o long_a disputation_n forasmuch_o as_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o heinous_a offence_n for_o the_o grecian_n &_o roman_n to_o celebrate_v the_o sabaoth_n or_o to_o take_v up_o jewish_a rite_n now_o we_o understand_v that_o the_o jew_n make_v choice_n of_o the_o river_n bank_n that_o they_o may_v there_o pray_v not_o for_o any_o superstition_n sake_n but_o because_o they_o shun_v the_o company_n of_o man_n &_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n if_o any_o man_n object_n why_o do_v not_o every_o man_n pray_v in_o his_o house_n private_o the_o answer_n be_v ready_a that_o this_o be_v a_o solemn_a rite_n of_o pray_v to_o testify_v godliness_n &_o that_o be_v far_o from_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n they_o may_v one_o exhort_v another_o to_o worship_n god_n alone_o &_o that_o they_o may_v nourish_v the_o religion_n receive_v of_o the_o father_n among_o themselves_o as_o touch_v paul_n &_o his_o fellow_n who_o be_v late_o come_v it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o come_v thither_o not_o only_o to_o pray_v but_o also_o because_o they_o hope_v to_o do_v some_o good_a for_o it_o be_v a_o fit_a place_n for_o they_o to_o teach_v in_o be_v far_o from_o noise_n &_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o attentive_a to_o hear_v the_o word_n who_o come_v thither_o to_o pray_v luke_n put_v the_o day_n of_o the_o sabbath_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o sabaoth_v where_o follow_v erasmus_n i_o have_v translate_v it_o there_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v prayer_n the_o old_a interpreter_n have_v do_v seem_v and_o the_o word_n nomizesthai_fw-mi have_v both_o signification_n among_o the_o grecian_n yet_o this_o sense_n be_v more_o fit_a for_o this_o present_a place_n that_o they_o do_v common_o use_v to_o have_v prayer_n there_o we_o speak_v to_o the_o woman_n either_o that_o place_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o assembly_n of_o woman_n or_o else_o religion_n be_v cold_a among_o man_n so_o that_o they_o come_v more_o slow_o howsoever_o it_o be_v we_o see_v that_o the_o holy_a man_n omit_v no_o occasion_n or_o opportunity_n because_o they_o vouchsafe_v to_o offer_v the_o gospel_n even_o to_o woman_n alone_o furthermore_o forasmuch_o as_o it_o seem_v likely_a to_o i_o that_o man_n and_o woman_n make_v their_o prayer_n there_o together_o i_o suppose_v that_o luke_n omit_v the_o man_n either_o because_o they_o will_v not_o hear_v or_o else_o because_o they_o profit_v nothing_o by_o hear_v 14_o a_o woman_n name_v lydia_n if_o they_o have_v be_v hear_v of_o a_o few_o woman_n yet_o this_o have_v be_v but_o to_o enter_v in_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o straight_a chink_n but_o now_o whereas_o one_o only_o hear_v attentive_o and_o with_o fruit_n may_v it_o not_o have_v seem_v that_o the_o way_n be_v stop_v before_o christ_n but_o afterward_o there_o sprunge_v a_o noble_a church_n of_o that_o one_o small_a graft_n which_o paul_n set_v out_o with_o many_o excellent_a commendation_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v that_o lydia_n have_v some_o companion_n whereof_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v because_o she_o do_v far_o excel_v they_o all_o and_o luke_n do_v not_o assign_v that_o for_o the_o cause_n why_o this_o one_o woman_n do_v show_v herself_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v because_o she_o be_v more_o witty_a than_o the_o rest_n or_o because_o she_o have_v some_o preparation_n of_o herself_o but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n open_v her_o heart_n that_o she_o may_v give_v ear_n and_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o speech_n of_o paul_n he_o have_v of_o late_o commend_v her_o godliness_n and_o yet_o he_o show_v that_o she_o can_v not_o comprehend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n save_v only_o through_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o not_o faith_n alone_o but_o all_o understanding_n and_o knowledge_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v the_o peculiar_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o minister_n do_v no_o good_a by_o teach_v and_o speak_v unless_o the_o inward_a call_n of_o god_n be_v thereunto_o add_v by_o the_o word_n heart_n the_o scripture_n mean_v sometime_o the_o mind_n as_o when_o moses_n say_v god_n have_v not_o give_v thou_o hitherto_o a_o heart_n to_o understand_v so_o likewise_o in_o this_o place_n luke_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o lydia_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o affection_n of_o heart_n to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n but_o that_o her_o mind_n be_v lighten_v that_o she_o may_v understand_v it_o by_o this_o let_v we_o learn_v that_o such_o be_v the_o blockishness_n such_o be_v the_o blindness_n of_o man_n that_o in_o see_v they_o see_v not_o in_o hear_v they_o hear_v not_o until_o such_o time_n as_o god_n do_v give_v they_o new_a eye_n and_o new_a ear_n but_o we_o must_v note_v the_o speech_n that_o the_o heart_n of_o lydia_n be_v open_v that_o she_o may_v give_v ear_n to_o the_o external_a voice_n of_o the_o teacher_n for_o as_o preach_v alone_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o dead_a letter_n so_o we_o must_v beware_v lest_o a_o false_a imagination_n or_o a_o show_n of_o secret_a illumination_n lead_v we_o away_o from_o the_o word_n whereupon_o faith_n depend_v and_o wherein_o it_o rest_v for_o many_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v amplify_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n feign_v to_o themselves_o certain_a inspire_v person_n that_o they_o may_v leave_v no_o use_n of_o the_o external_a word_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o suffer_v any_o such_o divorce_n to_o be_v make_v which_o join_v the_o ministry_n of_o man_n with_o the_o secret_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n unless_o the_o mind_n of_o lydia_n have_v be_v open_v paul_n preach_v shall_v have_v be_v only_o literal_a and_o yet_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o inspire_v she_o with_o bare_a revelation_n only_o but_o he_o give_v she_o the_o reverence_n of_o his_o word_n so_o that_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n which_o may_v otherwise_o have_v be_v utter_v in_o vain_a do_v pierce_v into_o a_o mind_n endue_v with_o heavenly_a light_n therefore_o let_v those_o brainsick_a fellow_n be_v pack_v who_o under_o colour_n of_o the_o spirit_n refuse_v external_a doctrine_n for_o we_o must_v note_v the_o temperature_n or_o moderation_n which_o luke_n set_v down_o here_o that_o we_o can_v have_v or_o obtain_v nothing_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n alone_o without_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v we_o not_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v contempt_n of_o the_o word_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o may_v dip_v into_o our_o mind_n and_o write_v in_o our_o heart_n the_o faith_n thereof_o now_o if_o the_o cause_n be_v demand_v why_o the_o lord_n open_v one_o woman_n heart_n alone_o we_o must_v return_v unto_o that_o principle_n that_o so_o many_o believe_v as_o be_v ordain_v to_o life_n for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n which_o go_v before_o the_o plain_a and_o manifest_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n in_o lydia_n be_v also_o a_o fruit_n of_o free_a election_n the_o describer_n of_o situation_n of_o place_n say_v that_o thyatira_n be_v a_o city_n of_o lydia_n situate_v upon_o the_o side_n of_o the_o river_n call_v hermus_n and_o that_o it_o be_v sometime_o call_v pelopia_n but_o some_o there_o be_v who_o attribute_n it_o to_o phrygia_n some_o to_o mysia_n 15_o when_o she_o be_v baptize_v hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o effectual_o god_n wrought_v in_o lydia_n even_o in_o a_o short_a moment_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o she_o receive_v and_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n sincere_o and_o give_v he_o her_o name_n before_o paul_n will_v admit_v she_o unto_o baptism_n this_o be_v a_o token_n of_o mere_a readiness_n also_o her_o holy_a zeal_n and_o godliness_n do_v therein_o show_v themselves_o in_o that_o she_o do_v also_o consecrate_v her_o family_n to_o god_n and_o sure_o all_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o have_v this_o desire_n to_o have_v those_o who_o be_v under_o they_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n for_o he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v a_o ruler_n over_o other_o whosoever_o be_v desirous_a to_o reign_v and_o rule_v in_o his_o own_o house_n over_o his_o wife_n child_n servant_n and_o maid_n and_o will_v cause_v they_o to_o give_v no_o place_n to_o christ_n therefore_o let_v every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a study_n to_o govern_v and_o order_v his_o house_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o image_n of_o the_o church_n i_o grant_v that_o lydia_n have_v not_o in_o her_o hand_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o those_o
city_n and_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a reason_n why_o luke_n make_v mention_n of_o their_o excellency_n of_o birth_n we_o know_v how_o hardly_o man_n come_v down_o from_o their_o high_a degree_n what_o a_o rare_a matter_n it_o be_v for_o those_o who_o be_v great_a in_o the_o world_n 1.11_o james_n 1.11_o to_o undertake_v the_o reproach_n of_o the_o cross_n lay_v away_o their_o pride_n and_o to_o rejoice_v in_o humility_n as_o james_n command_v therefore_o luke_n commend_v the_o rare_a efficacy_n and_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v that_o these_o noble_a man_n be_v no_o whit_n hinder_v by_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o that_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o bear_v the_o cross_n &_o prefer_v the_o reproach_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n second_o luk_n mean_v to_o make_v know_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n stand_v open_a for_o all_o order_n and_o degree_n in_o which_o sense_n paul_n say_v that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v lest_o the_o poor_a and_o those_o who_o be_v base_a do_v shut_v the_o gate_n against_o the_o rich_a though_o christ_n do_v vouchsafe_v they_o the_o former_a place_n 2.4_o 1._o tim._n 2.4_o therefore_o we_o see_v that_o noble_a man_n and_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v gather_v together_o that_o those_o who_o be_v man_n of_o honour_n &_o which_o be_v despise_v grow_v together_o into_o one_o body_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o man_n in_o general_n may_v humble_v themselves_o &_o extol_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n three_o luke_n seem_v to_o note_v the_o cause_n why_o there_o be_v so_o many_o add_v and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o such_o short_a time_n so_o spread_v abroad_o and_o enlarge_a at_o thessalonica_n to_o wit_n because_o that_o be_v no_o small_a help_n that_o chief_a man_n and_o man_n of_o honour_n do_v show_v other_o man_n the_o way_n because_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n move_v by_o authority_n and_o though_o this_o be_v no_o meet_a stay_n for_o faith_n &_o godliness_n yet_o be_v it_o no_o strange_a thing_n for_o god_n to_o bring_v the_o unbeliever_n who_o wonder_v as_o yet_o in_o error_n to_o himself_o by_o crooked_a and_o by_o way_n receive_v the_o word_n this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o he_o commend_v in_o the_o man_n of_o thessalonica_n that_o with_o a_o willing_a and_o ready_a desire_n they_o receive_v the_o gospel_n secondlie_o that_o they_o confirm_v their_o faith_n by_o diligent_a inquisition_n so_o that_o their_o faith_n and_o godliness_n be_v commendod_n in_o the_o begin_n for_o forwardness_n and_o in_o process_n they_o be_v praise_v for_o their_o constancy_n and_o fervent_a desire_n they_o have_v to_o profit_v and_o sure_o this_o be_v the_o first_o entrance_n into_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o follow_v and_o that_o abandon_v the_o understanding_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n 2.13_o 1._o the._n 2.13_o we_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o christ_n by_o he_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o to_o obey_v he_o also_o paul_n himself_o in_o adorn_v the_o thessalonian_o with_o this_o title_n do_v agree_v with_o saint_n luke_n as_o touch_v the_o second_o member_n this_o diligence_n be_v no_o small_a virtue_n whereunto_o luke_n say_v the_o faithful_a be_v much_o give_v for_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o many_o who_o at_o the_o first_o break_v out_o give_v themselves_o straightway_o to_o idleness_n while_n that_o they_o have_v no_o care_n to_o profit_n and_o so_o loose_a that_o small_a seed_n which_o they_o have_v at_o the_o first_o but_o two_o inconvenience_n may_v be_v in_o this_o place_n object_v for_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o arrogancy_n in_o that_o they_o inquire_v that_o they_o may_v judge_v &_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n altogether_o disagree_v with_o that_o readiness_n whereof_o he_o speak_v of_o late●_n second_o for_o as_o much_o as_o inquisition_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o doubtfulness_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v before_o endue_v with_o no_o faith_n which_o have_v always_o assurance_n &_o certainty_n join_v and_o link_v with_o it_o unto_o the_o first_o objection_n i_o answer_v that_o luke_n his_o word_n ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o the_o thessalonian_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o judge_v or_o as_o though_o they_o dispute_v whether_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v they_o do_v only_o examine_v paul_n doctrine_n by_o the_o rule_n and_o square_v of_o the_o scripture_n even_o as_o gold_n be_v try_v in_o the_o fire_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a touchstone_n whereby_o all_o doctrine_n must_v be_v try_v if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o trial_n be_v doubtful_a forasmuch_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v oftentimes_o doubtful_a and_o be_v interpret_v diverse_a way_n i_o say_v that_o we_o must_v also_o add_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n call_v the_o spirit_n of_o discretion_n but_o the_o faithful_a must_v judge_v of_o every_o doctrine_n no_o otherwise_o than_o out_o of_o and_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n have_v the_o spirit_n for_o their_o leader_n and_o guide_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v refute_v that_o sacrilegious_a quip_n of_o the_o papist_n because_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o gather_v certain_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n faith_n do_v depend_v only_o upon_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n for_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v commend_v the_o man_n of_o thessalonica_n he_o prescribe_v to_o we_o a_o rule_n in_o their_o example_n and_o in_o vain_a shall_v we_o search_v the_o scripture_n unless_o they_o have_v in_o they_o light_a enough_o to_o teach_v us._n therefore_o let_v this_o remain_v as_o a_o most_o sure_a maxim_n that_o no_o doctrine_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o that_o which_o we_o find_v to_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o pope_n will_v have_v all_o that_o receive_v without_o any_o more_o ado_n whatsoever_o he_o do_v blunder_v out_o at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o shall_v he_o be_v prefer_v before_o paul_n concern_v who_o preachtng_a it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o disciple_n to_o make_v inquisition_n and_o let_v we_o note_v that_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o any_o visured_a council_n but_o of_o a_o small_a assembly_n of_o man_n whereby_o it_o do_v better_a appear_v that_o everye_o man_n be_v call_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n so_o likewise_o make_v of_o search_n do_v not_o disagree_v with_o the_o forwardness_n of_o faith_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o man_n do_v harken_v and_o be_v desirous_a to_o learn_v do_v show_v himself_o attentive_a he_o be_v now_o bend_v and_o apt_a to_o be_v teach_v though_o he_o do_v not_o full_o give_v his_o consent_n for_o example_n sake_n a_o unknowen_a teacher_n shall_v profess_v that_o he_o do_v bring_v true_a doctrine_n i_o will_v come_v be_v ready_a to_o hear_v and_o my_o mind_n shall_v be_v frame_v unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o truth_n nevertheless_o i_o will_v weigh_v with_o myself_o what_o manner_n doctrine_n it_o be_v which_o he_o bring_v neither_o will_v i_o embrace_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o certain_a truth_n and_o that_o which_o i_o know_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o this_o be_v the_o best_a moderation_n when_o be_v fast_o bind_v with_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n we_o hear_v that_o willing_o and_o quiet_o which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o as_o proceed_v from_o he_o nevertheless_o we_o beware_v of_o the_o seduce_a subtlety_n of_o man_n neither_o do_v our_o mind_n throw_v themselves_o headlong_o with_o a_o blind_a rage_n to_o believe_v every_o thing_n without_o advisement_n therefore_o the_o search_v mention_v by_o luke_n do_v not_o tend_v to_o that_o end_n that_o we_o may_v be_v slow_a and_o unwilling_a to_o believe_v but_o rather_o readiness_n with_o judgement_n be_v make_v the_o mean_a between_o lightness_n &_o stubbornness_n now_o must_v we_o answer_v the_o second_o objection_n faith_n be_v contrary_a to_o doubtfulness_n he_o which_o inquire_v doubt_v therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o thessalonian_o inquire_v and_o make_v search_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n they_o be_v void_a of_o faith_n as_o yet_o but_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o hinder_v the_o confirmation_n thereof_o i_o call_v that_o confirmation_n when_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v more_o and_o more_o seal_v up_o in_o our_o heart_n whereof_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v before_o for_o example_n sake_n i_o hear_v out_o of_o the_o gospel_n that_o i_o be_o reconcile_v to_o god_n through_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o my_o sin_n be_v purge_v through_o his_o holy_a blood_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o testimony_n utter_v which_o shall_v make_v i_o believe_v this_o
they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v of_o none_o effect_n shall_v so_o gird_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v at_o length_n perceive_v that_o they_o have_v strive_v in_o vain_a with_o their_o snare_n and_o no_o marvel_v if_o this_o point_n of_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n be_v deride_v at_o athens_n for_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n hide_v from_o man_n mind_n whereon_o the_o chief_a philosopher_n do_v never_o think_v neither_o can_v we_o otherwise_o comprehend_v it_o then_o when_o we_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n unto_o the_o infinite_a power_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o paul_n his_o sermon_n be_v not_o altogether_o without_o fruit_n because_o there_o be_v some_o of_o the_o hearer_n which_o be_v desirous_a to_o profit_v and_o go_v forward_o for_o when_o they_o say_v that_o they_o will_v hear_v he_o again_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o thorough_o persuade_v yet_o have_v they_o some_o taste_n which_o do_v provoke_v they_o to_o be_v desirous_a to_o profit_v sure_o this_o desire_n be_v contrary_a to_o loathsomeness_n 34_o among_o who_o be_v also_o dionysius_n see_v that_o luke_n do_v name_n one_o man_n and_o one_o woman_n only_o it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n of_o those_o which_o believe_v at_o the_o first_o for_o those_o other_o of_o who_o he_o make_v mention_n remain_v indifferent_a because_o they_o do_v neither_o whole_o despise_v paul_n his_o doctrine_n neither_o be_v they_o so_o thorough_o touch_v that_o they_o join_v themselves_o unto_o he_o that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o scholar_n luke_n make_v mention_n of_o dionysius_n above_o the_o rest_n because_o he_o be_v in_o no_o small_a authority_n among_o his_o citizen_n therefore_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o damaris_n be_v also_o a_o woman_n of_o some_o renown_n furthermore_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a in_o that_o the_o papi_v make_v of_o a_o judge_n a_o astrologer_n but_o this_o be_v to_o be_v impute_v partly_o to_o their_o ignorance_n partly_o to_o their_o boldness_n who_o see_v they_o know_v not_o what_o areopagus_n or_o mars_n street_n mean_v take_v to_o themselves_o liberty_n to_o feign_v whatsoever_o they_o will_v and_o their_o rudeness_n be_v too_o gross_a who_o ascribe_v the_o book_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n and_o of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o this_o dionysius_n for_o the_o heavenly_a hierarchy_n be_v stuff_v not_o only_o with_o many_o doltish_a and_o moonkish_a trifle_n but_o also_o with_o many_o absurd_a invention_n and_o wicked_a speculation_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n do_v themselves_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v make_v many_o year_n after_o when_o as_o the_o purity_n of_o christianity_n be_v corrupt_v with_o a_o huge_a heap_n of_o ceremony_n as_o for_o the_o book_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n though_o it_o have_v in_o it_o some_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o altogether_o to_o be_v despise_v yet_o it_o do_v rather_o breath_n out_o subtlety_n then_o sound_o godliness_n chap._n xviii_o 1_o after_o this_o paul_n depart_v from_o athens_n and_o come_v to_o corinthus_n 2_o and_o have_v get_v a_o certain_a jew_n call_v aquila_n bear_v in_o pontus_n who_o come_v late_o from_o italy_n and_o priscilla_n his_o wife_n because_o claudius_n have_v command_v all_o jew_n to_o depart_v from_o rome_n he_o come_v unto_o they_o 3_o and_o because_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o craft_n he_o abide_v with_o they_o and_o wrought_v and_o they_o be_v tent_n maker_n 4_o and_o he_o dispute_v in_o the_o synagogue_n every_o sabbath_n day_n and_o persuade_v both_o jew_n and_o greek_n 5_o and_o when_o silas_n and_o timotheus_n be_v come_v from_o macedonia_n paul_n be_v force_v in_o the_o spirit_n testify_v to_o the_o jew_n that_o jesus_n be_v christ._n 1_o this_o history_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v remember_v even_o for_o this_o one_o cause_n because_o it_o contain_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinthus_n which_o as_o it_o be_v famous_a for_o good_a cause_n both_o because_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n &_o also_o because_o of_o the_o excellent_a gift_n bestow_v upon_o they_o so_o there_o be_v in_o it_o gross_a and_o shameful_a vice_n furthermore_o luke_n show_v in_o this_o place_n with_o what_o great_a labour_n and_o how_o hardly_o paul_n do_v win_v the_o same_o to_o christ_n it_o be_v well_o know_v what_o a_o rich_a city_n corinthus_n be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o noble_a mart_n how_o populous_a how_o great_o give_v to_o pleasure_n and_o the_o old_a proverb_n do_v testify_v that_o it_o be_v sumptuous_a and_o full_a of_o riot_n all_o man_n can_v go_v to_o corinthus_n when_o paul_n enter_v the_o same_o what_o hope_v i_o pray_v you_o can_v he_o conceive_v he_o be_v a_o simple_a man_n unknown_a have_v no_o eloquence_n or_o pomp_n show_v no_o wealth_n or_o power_n in_o that_o that_o huge_a gulf_n do_v not_o swallow_v up_o his_o confidence_n and_o desire_n which_o he_o have_v to_o spread_v abroad_o the_o gospel_n by_o this_o we_o gather_v that_o he_o be_v furnish_v with_o wonderful_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o also_o that_o god_n wrought_v by_o his_o hand_n after_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n and_o not_o after_o any_o humane_a manner_n wherefore_o he_o boast_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o corinthian_n be_v the_o seal_n of_o his_o apostleship_n for_o they_o be_v twice_o blind_a 9.2_o 1._o cor._n 9.2_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v more_o plain_o appear_v in_o such_o a_o simple_a &_o base_a kind_n of_o deal_v and_o he_o himself_o show_v no_o small_a token_n of_o invincible_a constancy_n when_o be_v vex_v with_o the_o mock_n of_o all_o man_n as_o the_o proud_a do_v contemn_v he_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o stay_v himself_o upon_o god_n help_v alone_o but_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o labour_n to_o note_v all_o the_o circumstance_n as_o luke_n set_v down_o the_o same_o in_o order_n 2_o a_o jew_n call_v aquila_n this_o be_v no_o small_a trial_n in_o that_o paul_n find_v none_o at_o corinthus_n to_o lodge_v he_o save_v aquila_n who_o have_v be_v twice_o exile_v for_o be_v bear_v in_o pontus_n he_o forsake_v his_o country_n and_o sail_v over_o the_o sea_n that_o he_o may_v dwell_v at_o rome_n he_o be_v compel_v to_o depart_v thence_o again_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o claudius_n caesar_n though_o the_o commodiousnes_n of_o the_o city_n be_v such_o the_o plenty_n so_o great_a the_o situation_n so_o pleasant_a and_o there_o be_v also_o so_o many_o jew_n there_o yet_o paul_n find_v no_o more_o fit_a host_n than_o a_o man_n that_o have_v be_v banish_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o also_o out_o of_o another_o soil_n if_o we_o compare_v the_o great_a fruit_n which_o ensue_v immediate_o upon_o his_o preach_n with_o such_o a_o base_a entrance_n the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v plain_o appear_v also_o we_o may_v see_v how_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o singular_a counsel_n turn_v those_o thing_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a which_o seem_v contrary_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o unhappy_a nothing_o be_v more_o miserable_a than_o exile_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o it_o be_v far_o better_a for_o aquila_n to_o be_v paul_n his_o companion_n than_o to_o be_v in_o the_o high_a office_n either_o at_o rome_n or_o in_o his_o country_n therefore_o this_o happy_a calamity_n of_o aquila_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v often_o better_a provide_v for_o we_o when_o he_o do_v sharp_o punish_v we_o than_o if_o he_o shall_v most_o gentle_o entreat_v we_o and_o when_o he_o toss_v we_o to_o and_o fro_o in_o most_o extreme_a exile_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o unto_o the_o heavenly_a rest_n all_o jew_n to_o depart_v from_o rome_n the_o estate_n of_o that_o nation_n be_v then_o very_o miserable_a so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o they_o do_v not_o almost_o all_o depart_v from_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n that_o the_o religion_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o prevail_v against_o caesar_n tyranny_n and_o that_o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n do_v arise_v few_o be_v turn_v unto_o he_o notwithstanding_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n suffer_v they_o to_o pass_v through_o many_o trouble_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o willing_o yea_o the_o more_o greedy_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n offer_v they_o but_o the_o more_o part_n become_v dull_a in_o their_o misery_n few_o do_v submit_v themselves_o to_o be_v teach_v when_o the_o lord_n do_v punish_v they_o as_o do_v aquila_n and_o priscilla_n yet_o if_o suetonius_n say_v the_o truth_n they_o be_v expel_v through_o hatred_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o
worthy_a to_o have_v be_v condemn_v if_o he_o have_v go_v about_o any_o such_o thing_n but_o for_o asmuch_o as_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o do_v treacherous_o &_o wicked_o slander_v the_o holy_a man_n they_o endeavour_v to_o cover_v a_o evil_a cause_n with_o a_o honest_a excuse_n we_o know_v how_o strait_o the_o lord_n command_v in_o the_o law_n how_o he_o will_v have_v his_o servant_n to_o worship_v he_o therefore_o to_o depart_v from_o that_o rule_n be_v sacrilege_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o paul_n never_o mean_v to_o add_v too_o or_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n from_o the_o law_n he_o be_v unjust_o accuse_v of_o this_o fault_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o though_o the_o faith_n full_o behave_v themselves_o never_o so_o upright_o &_o blameless_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o escape_v false_a &_o slanderous_a report_n until_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o purge_v themselves_o but_o paul_n be_v not_o only_o unworthy_o and_o false_o slander_v by_o the_o adversary_n but_o when_o he_o will_v have_v refute_v their_o impudency_n &_o false_a report_n his_o mouth_n be_v stop_v by_o the_o deputy_n therefore_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o judgement_n seat_n without_o defend_v himself_o and_o gallio_n refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o cause_n not_o for_o any_o evil_n will_v he_o bear_v to_o paul_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o deputy_n to_o give_v judgement_n concern_v the_o religion_n of_o every_o province_n for_o though_o the_o roman_n can_v not_o enforce_v the_o nation_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o to_o observe_v their_o rite_n yet_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o allow_v that_o which_o they_o do_v tolerate_v they_o forbid_v their_o magistrate_n to_o meddle_v with_o this_o part_n of_o jurisdiction_n here_o we_o see_v what_o the_o ignorance_n of_o true_a godliness_n do_v in_o set_v in_o order_n the_o state_n of_o every_o commonwealth_n and_o dominion_n all_o man_n confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a thing_n that_o true_a religion_n be_v in_o force_n and_o flourish_v now_o when_o the_o true_a god_n be_v know_v and_o the_o certain_a &_o sure_a rule_n of_o worship_v he_o be_v understand_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o equal_a then_o that_o which_o god_n command_v in_o his_o law_n to_o wit_n that_o those_o who_o bear_v rule_v with_o power_n have_v abolish_v contrary_a superstition_n defend_v ●he_n pure_a worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n but_o see_v that_o the_o roman_n do_v observe_v their_o rite_n only_o through_o pride_n &_o stubbornness_n &_o see_v they_o have_v no_o certainty_n where_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n they_o think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o best_a way_n they_o can_v take_v if_o they_o shall_v grant_v liberty_n to_o those_o who_o dwell_v in_o the_o province_n to_o live_v as_o they_o lust_v but_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a then_o to_o leave_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n to_o man_n choice_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o god_n command_v by_o moses_n that_o the_o king_n shall_v cause_v a_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o be_v write_v out_o for_o himself_o to_o wit_n that_o be_v well_o instruct_v 17.18_o deut._n 17.18_o &_o certain_a of_o his_o faith_n he_o may_v with_o more_o courage_n take_v in_o hand_n to_o maintain_v that_o which_o he_o know_v certain_o be_v right_a 15_o of_o word_n and_o name_n these_o word_n be_v not_o well_o pack_v together_o yet_o gallio_n speak_v thus_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o contempt_n as_o if_o the_o jewish_a religion_n do_v consist_v only_o in_o word_n &_o superfluous_a question_n and_o sure_o as_o the_o nation_n be_v much_o give_v to_o contention_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o many_o do_v trouble_v themselves_o &_o other_o with_o superfluous_a trifle_n yea_o we_o hear_v with_o what_o paul_n hit_v they_o in_o the_o tooth_n in_o many_o place_n 3.9_o cap._n 1.14_o and_o 3.9_o especial_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n yet_o galio_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v excuse_v who_o do_v mock_v the_o holy_a law_n of_o god_n together_o with_o their_o curiosity_n for_o as_o it_o behove_v he_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n of_o vain_a contention_n in_o word_n so_o we_o must_v on_o the_o other_o side_n know_v that_o when_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v in_o hand_n the_o strife_n be_v not_o about_o word_n but_o a_o matter_n of_o all_o other_o most_o serious_a be_v handle_v 17_o all_o the_o grecian_n have_v take_v sosthenes_n this_o be_v that_o sosthenes_n who_o paul_n do_v honourable_o couple_v with_o himself_o as_o his_o companion_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o former_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o though_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o he_o before_o among_o the_o faithful_a yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o he_o be_v then_o one_o of_o paul_n his_o companion_n &_o advocate_n and_o what_o fury_n do_v enforce_v the_o grecian_n to_o run_v headlong_o upon_o he_o save_v only_o because_o it_o be_v allot_v to_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o have_v the_o world_n set_v against_o they_o and_o offend_v with_o they_o &_o their_o cause_n though_o unknown_a wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o such_o unjust_a deal_n shall_v trouble_v we_o at_o this_o day_n when_o we_o see_v the_o miserable_a church_n oppugn_v on_o every_o side_n moreover_o the_o forwardness_n of_o man_n naure_n be_v depaint_v out_o unto_o we_o as_o in_o a_o table_n admit_v we_o grant_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v hate_v every_o where_o for_o good_a cause_n yet_o why_o be_v the_o grecian_n rather_o displease_v with_o sosthenes_n a_o modest_a man_n then_o with_o the_o autor_n of_o the_o tumult_n who_o trouble_v paul_n without_o any_o cause_n namely_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n because_o when_o man_n be_v not_o govern_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v carry_v headlong_o unto_o evil_a as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o secret_a inspiration_n of_o nature_n notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v that_o they_o bear_v sosthenes_n such_o hatred_n think_v he_o have_v lodge_v wicked_a man_n to_o raise_v sedition_n neither_o do_v gallio_n care_n for_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n this_o looseness_n must_v be_v impute_v not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o sluggishness_n of_o the_o deputy_n as_o to_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o jewish_a religion_n the_o roman_n can_v have_v wish_v that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o true_a god_n have_v be_v bury_v and_o therefore_o when_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o vow_v their_o vow_n and_o to_o pay_v they_o to_o all_o the_o idol_n of_o asia_n and_o grecia_n it_o be_v a_o deadly_a fact_n to_o do_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n final_o in_o the_o common_a liberty_n of_o all_o manner_n superstition_n only_o true_a religion_n be_v accept_v this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o gallio_n wink_v at_o the_o injury_n do_v to_o sosthenes_n he_o profess_v of_o late_a that_o he_o will_v punish_v injury_n if_o any_o be_v do_v now_o he_o suffer_v a_o guiltless_a man_n to_o be_v beat_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n whence_o come_v this_o sufferance_n save_v only_o because_o he_o do_v in_o heart_n desire_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v one_o slay_v another_o that_o their_o religion_n may_v be_v put_v out_o with_o they_o but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o luke_n the_o spirit_n condemn_v gallio_n his_o carelessness_n because_o he_o do_v not_o aid_v a_o man_n which_o be_v unjust_o punish_v let_v our_o magistrate_n know_v that_o they_o be_v far_o more_o inexcusable_a if_o they_o wink_v at_o injury_n &_o wicked_a fact_n if_o they_o bridle_v not_o the_o wantonness_n of_o the_o wicked_a if_o they_o reach_v not_o forth_o their_o hand_n to_o the_o oppress_a but_o &_o if_o the_o sluggish_a be_v to_o look_v for_o just_a damnation_n what_o terrible_a judgement_n hang_v over_o the_o head_n of_o those_o who_o be_v unfaithful_a &_o wicked_a who_o by_o favour_v evil_a cause_n &_o bear_v with_o wicked_a fact_n set_v up_o as_o it_o be_v a_o banner_n of_o want_n of_o punishment_n and_o be_v fan_n to_o kindle_v boldness_n to_o do_v hurt_v 18_o and_o when_o paul_n have_v tarry_v there_o many_o day_n have_v take_v his_o leave_n of_o the_o brethren_n he_o sail_v into_o syria_n priscilla_n and_o aquila_n accompany_v he_o when_o he_o have_v shave_v his_o head_n at_o cenchrea_n for_o he_o have_v a_o vow_n 19_o and_o he_o come_v to_o ephesus_n where_o he_o leave_v they_o and_o when_o he_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o synagogue_n he_o dispute_v with_o the_o jew_n 20_o and_o when_o they_o desire_v he_o that_o he_o will_v stay_v long_a time_n with_o they_o he_o do_v not_o consent_v 21_o but_o take_v his_o leave_n say_v i_o must_v needs_o keep_v the_o feast_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n in_o jerusalem_n but_o i_o will_v
prick_v forward_o with_o a_o opinion_n unaduised_o conceive_v therefore_o let_v knowledge_n be_v present_a that_o it_o may_v govern_v zeal_n and_o now_o it_o be_v say_v that_o zeal_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o diligence_n because_o apollo_n give_v himself_o to_o teach_v diligent_o but_o and_o if_o that_o man_n be_v not_o yet_o thorough_o &_o perfect_o teach_v in_o the_o gospel_n do_v preach_v christ_n so_o diligent_o and_o free_o what_o excuse_n do_v those_o man_n hope_v to_o have_v who_o know_v that_o more_o perfect_o and_o full_o which_o he_o know_v not_o as_o yet_o if_o they_o do_v not_o endeavour_v so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o further_o and_o advance_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n luke_n do_v attribute_v zeal_n to_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o because_o it_o be_v a_o rare_a and_o peculiar_a gift_n neither_o do_v i_o so_o expound_v it_o that_o apollo_n be_v move_v and_o prick_v forward_o with_o the_o instinct_n of_o his_o mind_n but_o by_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 26_o who_o when_o priscilla_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o far_o priscilla_n and_o aquila_n be_v from_o the_o love_n themselves_o and_o from_o envy_v another_o man_n virtue_n in_o that_o they_o deliver_v those_o thing_n familiar_o and_o private_o to_o a_o eloquent_a man_n which_o he_o may_v afterward_o utter_v public_o they_o excel_v not_o in_o the_o same_o grace_n wherein_o he_o do_v excel_v and_o peradventure_o they_o may_v have_v be_v despise_v in_o the_o congregation_n moreover_o they_o most_o diligent_o help_v he_o who_o they_o see_v better_o furnish_v as_o well_o with_o eloquence_n as_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o they_o keep_v silence_n and_o he_o alone_o be_v hear_v again_o this_o be_v no_o small_a modesty_n which_o be_v in_o apollo_n in_o that_o he_o do_v suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o instruct_v not_o only_o in_o a_o handicraftsman_n but_o also_o by_o a_o woman_n he_o be_v mighty_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o do_v surpass_v they_o but_o as_o touch_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n those_o do_v polish_v and_o trim_v he_o who_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v scarce_o fit_a minister_n also_o we_o see_v that_o at_o that_o time_n woman_n be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o papist_n will_v have_v they_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o see_v that_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n be_v instruct_v by_o a_o woman_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o priscilla_n do_v execute_v this_o function_n of_o teach_v at_o home_n in_o she_o own_o house_n that_o she_o may_v not_o overthrow_v the_o order_n prescribe_v by_o god_n and_o nature_n 27_o when_o he_o be_v determine_v luke_n do_v not_o express_v for_o what_o cause_n apollos_n will_v go_v to_o achaia_n notwithstanding_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o text_n that_o he_o be_v not_o allure_v with_o any_o private_a commodity_n but_o because_o more_o plentiful_a fruit_n in_o spread_v abroad_o the_o gospel_n do_v show_v itself_o there_o because_o the_o brethren_n do_v more_o encourage_v he_o with_o their_o exhortation_n and_o do_v spur_v he_o when_o he_o do_v already_o run_v which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v unless_o it_o have_v be_v for_o the_o common_a profit_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o entreat_v a_o man_n to_o depart_v to_o another_o place_n who_o faithful_a industry_n they_o already_o use_v and_o do_v know_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v need_n of_o he_o afterward_o unless_o there_o have_v be_v some_o better_a recompense_n offer_v and_o i_o take_v it_o that_o the_o brethren_n of_o ephesus_n write_v to_o those_o of_o achaia_n not_o only_o that_o they_o shall_v provide_v lodging_n for_o the_o man_n but_o also_o that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v he_o to_o teach_v this_o be_v holy_a commendation_n in_o deed_n when_o we_o study_v to_o extol_v every_o good_a man_n with_o our_o testimony_n and_o consent_n lest_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o have_v give_v to_o every_o man_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n lie_v bury_v when_o he_o come_v the_o brethren_n forsawe_v this_o who_o have_v already_o have_v experience_n thereof_o when_o they_o exhort_v he_o to_o address_v himself_o to_o that_o journey_n which_o he_o have_v already_o in_o mind_n conceive_v and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o help_v the_o faithful_a much_o we_o may_v take_v it_o two_o way_n either_o that_o he_o help_v those_o who_o be_v not_o so_o well_o furnish_v and_o that_o he_o do_v support_v they_o to_o beat_v down_o the_o pride_n of_o their_o enemy_n for_o every_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o have_v weapon_n in_o readiness_n to_o undertake_v a_o hard_a combat_n against_o old_a enemy_n who_o will_v never_o have_v yield_v unless_o they_o have_v be_v enforce_v or_o that_o he_o aid_v they_o lest_o their_o faith_n shall_v fail_v be_v shake_v with_o the_o gainsay_n of_o the_o enemy_n which_o thing_n do_v oftentimes_o befall_v the_o weak_a i_o take_v it_o that_o they_o be_v holpen_v both_o way_n that_o have_v a_o skilful_a and_o practise_a captain_n they_o gate_n the_o victory_n in_o the_o conflict_n second_o that_o their_o faith_n be_v fortify_v with_o a_o new_a prop_n that_o it_o may_v be_v without_o danger_n of_o waver_v furthermore_o luke_n seem_v to_o note_v that_o the_o brethren_n be_v holpen_v with_o this_o stoutness_n and_o constancy_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o dispute_v public_o with_o the_o jew_n for_o this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o zeal_n and_o boldness_n not_o to_o fly_v the_o light_n whereas_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sentence_n these_o word_n be_v use_v through_o grace_n it_o do_v either_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n go_v before_o they_o believe_v or_o else_o it_o must_v be_v refer_v unto_o the_o help_n wherewith_o he_o help_v the_o brethren_n the_o former_a interpretation_n be_v nothing_o hard_a for_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o shall_v be_v this_o that_o the_o faithful_a be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v the_o brethren_n who_o be_v already_o call_v by_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n unto_o faith_n be_v further_v yet_o the_o other_o text_n seem_v to_o agree_v better_o that_o apollo_n in_o impart_v that_o grace_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v with_o the_o brethren_n do_v help_v they_o so_o that_o through_o grace_n shall_v import_v as_o much_o as_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o grace_n receive_v 28_o he_o overcome_v the_o jew_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v to_o what_o use_n that_o ability_n which_o apollos_n have_v in_o that_o he_o be_v mighty_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v serve_v to_o wit_n because_o he_o have_v a_o strong_a and_o forcible_a proof_n to_o reprove_v and_o overcome_v the_o enemy_n withal_o also_o the_o state_n of_o the_o disputation_n be_v brief_o set_v down_o that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n for_o this_o be_v out_o of_o question_n among_o the_o jew_n that_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o be_v the_o deliverer_n but_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n be_v this_o christ_n through_o who_o salvation_n be_v offer_v therefore_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o apollo_n so_o to_o dispute_v concern_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v prove_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n and_o that_o he_o may_v thereby_o gather_v that_o he_o be_v christ_n also_o this_o place_n do_v testify_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a not_o only_o to_o teach_v but_o also_o to_o break_v the_o obstinacy_n of_o those_o which_o do_v not_o obey_v and_o follow_v willing_o for_o our_o faith_n shall_v not_o otherwise_o be_v firm_a enough_o unless_o there_o be_v a_o evident_a demonstration_n extaunt_a there_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v for_o salvation_n sure_o if_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n have_v so_o great_a light_n that_o apollo_n do_v thereby_o prove_v manifest_o that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n as_o if_o he_o do_v point_n out_o the_o matter_n with_o his_o finger_n the_o add_v of_o the_o gospel_n must_v bring_v this_o to_o pass_v at_o least_o that_o the_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v fetch_v from_o the_o whole_a scripture_n wherefore_o it_o be_v detestable_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n in_o that_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v dark_a and_o doubtful_a for_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v god_n have_v speak_v unless_o the_o plain_a &_o invincible_a truth_n shall_v show_v itself_o in_o his_o word_n and_o whereas_o they_o infer_v that_o we_o must_v stand_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n &_o they_o be_v not_o to_o dispute_v with_o heretic_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n
word_n way_n let_v the_o reader_n understand_v thus_o much_o that_o it_o be_v here_o take_v for_o that_o which_o the_o latin_n call_v sect_n the_o greek_a philosopher_n call_v it_o heresy_n or_o heresy_n but_o because_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n where_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o reign_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o odious_a or_o detestable_a than_o for_o every_o man_n to_o choose_v at_o his_o pleasure_n that_o which_o he_o will_v follow_v i_o think_v that_o luke_n do_v fly_v that_o name_n which_o be_v for_o good_a cause_n infamous_a among_o the_o godly_a and_o that_o after_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n he_o put_v way_n in_o steed_n of_o ordinance_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o matter_n we_o see_v how_o wonderful_o the_o lord_n do_v exercise_v his_o servant_n he_o do_v hope_v when_o he_o do_v address_v himself_o for_o his_o journey_n that_o the_o church_n will_v be_v quiet_a after_o his_o departure_n and_o lo_o there_o arise_v a_o uproar_n at_o a_o sudden_a where_o he_o do_v least_o fear_n but_o in_o demetrius_n it_o appear_v what_o a_o hurtful_a plague_n covetousness_n be_v for_o one_o man_n for_o his_o own_o gain_n sake_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o trouble_v a_o whole_a city_n with_o sedition_n and_o the_o craft_n man_n who_o be_v as_o firebrand_n kindle_v by_o he_o and_o do_v spread_v abroad_o the_o fire_n every_o where_o do_v teach_v we_o what_o a_o easy_a matter_n it_o be_v to_o cause_v filthy_a man_n and_o those_o who_o belly_n be_v their_o god_n to_o commit_v all_o manner_n wickedness_n especial_o if_o they_o live_v only_o by_o gain_n evil_o get_v and_o the_o hope_n of_o gain_n be_v take_v from_o they_o moreover_o in_o this_o history_n we_o see_v a_o lively_a image_n of_o our_o time_n demetrius_n and_o his_o band_n raise_v a_o tumult_n because_o if_o superstition_n whereby_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o get_v gain_n be_v take_v away_o their_o craft_n will_v fall_v to_o ground_n therefore_o they_o fight_v as_o if_o it_o be_v for_o their_o life_n lest_o demetrius_n go_v without_o his_o fat_a prey_n and_o the_o rest_n want_v their_o daily_a lyve_n what_o zeal_n do_v at_o this_o day_n prick_v forward_o the_o pope_n the_o horn_a byshoppe_n the_o munke_n and_o all_o the_o rabblement_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n yea_o what_o fury_n do_v drive_v they_o so_o sore_o to_o resist_v the_o gospel_n they_o boast_v that_o they_o strive_v for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n neither_o do_v demetrius_n want_v a_o honest_a colour_n pretend_v the_o worship_n of_o diana_n but_o the_o matter_n itself_o do_v plain_o declare_v that_o they_o fight_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o altar_n as_o for_o the_o fi●es_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v have_v hot_a kitching_n they_o can_v well_o wink_v at_o filthy_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n so_o they_o lack_v nothing_o of_o their_o revenue_n only_o they_o be_v more_o than_o courageous_a in_o maintain_v such_o superstition_n as_o be_v meet_a for_o their_o purpose_n therefore_o be_v teach_v by_o such_o example_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o make_v choice_n of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o life_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n lest_o desire_n of_o gain_n provoke_v we_o to_o enter_v a_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a combat_n and_o as_o for_o those_o who_o through_o ignorance_n or_o error_n be_v fall_v unto_o any_o ungodly_a occupation_n or_o be_v entangle_v in_o any_o other_o impure_a and_o wicked_a kind_n of_o life_n let_v they_o notwithstanding_o beware_v of_o such_o sacrilegious_a rashness_n and_o as_o touch_v godly_a teacher_n let_v they_o learn_v by_o this_o example_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o want_v adversary_n until_o the_o whole_a world_n through_o denial_n of_o itself_o offer_v peace_n which_o we_o know_v will_v never_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o paul_n doctrine_n take_v away_o demetrius_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o silver_n smith_n gain_n they_o leap_v out_o furious_o to_o put_v out_o the_o same_o will_v not_o they_o do_v the_o same_o who_o the_o gospel_n shall_v contrary_v but_o there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o have_v not_o occasion_n to_o fight_v for_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enemies_n to_o god_n so_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o how_o many_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v as_o many_o arm_a enemy_n to_o resist_v christ_n it_o will_v in_o deed_n oftentimes_o fall_v out_o that_o god_n will_v bridle_v the_o wicked_a lest_o they_o raise_v some_o tumult_n or_o break_v out_o into_o open_a rage_n yet_o whosoever_o be_v not_o tame_v and_o bring_v down_o to_o bear_v christ_n yoke_n he_o shall_v always_o hate_v his_o gospel_n so_o that_o faithful_a &_o godly_a teacher_n must_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v always_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o great_a store_n of_o enemy_n demetrius_z his_o covetousness_n be_v manifest_a nevertheless_o we_o must_v also_o know_v this_o that_o he_o be_v satan_n his_o fan_n who_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o overthrow_v paul_n doctrine_n find_v this_o fit_a instrument_n now_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o know_v that_o satan_n be_v a_o deadly_a enemy_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o truth_n do_v we_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v ever_o want_v minister_n who_o shall_v rage_v through_o his_o motion_n and_o persuasion_n either_o with_o open_a rage_n or_o else_o seek_v to_o work_v the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o secret_a practice_n or_o spew_v out_o the_o poison_n of_o their_o hatred_n or_o else_o at_o least_o show_v some_o token_n of_o enmity_n by_o fret_v and_o murmur_v 25_o by_o this_o craft_n demetrius_n do_v in_o this_o place_n filthy_o bewray_v his_o malice_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n in_o some_o measure_n to_o provide_v for_o his_o priva●●_n profit_n but_o to_o trouble_v common_a peace_n for_o a_o man_n own_o gain_n to_o overthrow_v equity_n and_o right_a to_o give_v over_o a_o man_n self_n to_o do_v violence_n &_o commit_v murder_n to_o extinguish_v that_o of_o set_a purpose_n which_o be_v just_a and_o right_o that_o be_v too_o great_a wickedness_n demetrius_n confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o cause_n because_o paul_n deni_v that_o those_o be_v god_n which_o be_v make_v with_o man_n hand_n he_o do_v not_o inquire_v whether_o this_o be_v true_a or_o no_o but_o be_v blind_v with_o a_o desire_n to_o get_v gain_n he_o be_v carry_v headlong_o to_o oppress_v ●●ue_a doctrine_n the_o same_o blindness_n do_v drive_v he_o headlong_o to_o seek_v violent_a remedy_n also_o the_o craft_n man_n because_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o poverty_n and_o hunger_n run_v headlong_o as_o violent_o for_o the_o belly_n be_v blind_a and_o deaf_a so_o that_o it_o can_v admit_v no_o equity_n for_o which_o cause_n every_o one_o of_o we_o aught_o more_o to_o suspect_v himself_o when_o the_o question_n be_v touch_v our_o own_o gain_n &_o profit_n lest_o the_o same_o covetous_a desire_n which_o make_v these_o man_n so_o mad_a take_v away_o all_o difference_n of_o justice_n and_o unjustice_n of_o that_o which_o be_v filthy_a and_o that_o which_o be_v honest_a 27_o not_o only_o this_o part_n this_o be_v first_o disordered_o handle_v in_o that_o demetrius_n be_v careful_a for_o religion_n after_o other_o thing_n because_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a then_o to_o prefer_v the_o belly_n before_o the_o goddess_n but_o even_o this_o be_v also_o vain_a in_o that_o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o diana_n be_v in_o hazard_n for_o if_o he_o have_v suffer_v no_o loss_n by_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n he_o will_v have_v sit_v quiet_o at_o home_n he_o will_v neither_o have_v take_v think_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o diana_n neither_o will_v he_o have_v trouble_v other_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n then_o he_o be_v so_o diligent_a and_o so_o earnest_a in_o his_o business_n even_o this_o because_o he_o be_v plague_v at_o home_n and_o because_o he_o see_v that_o he_o and_o his_o copartner_n have_v no_o honest_a or_o probable_a cause_n to_o make_v any_o stir_n he_o go_v about_o to_o colour_v the_o matter_n with_o some_o other_o colour_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v cover_v the_o shame_n of_o his_o wicked_a fact_n he_o cloke_v it_o with_o the_o title_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v plausible_a so_o that_o the_o wicked_a howsoever_o they_o strive_v froward_o against_o god_n yet_o they_o gather_v here_o and_o there_o honest_a excuse_n impudent_o but_o god_n do_v not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v mock_v but_o do_v rather_o pull_v they_o out_o of_o their_o start_a hole_n there_o need_v no_o other_o witness_n to_o refute_v demetrius_n his_o hypocrisy_n because_o he_o cut_v his_o own_o throat_n with_o his_o own_o word_n when_o he_o bewray_v the_o sorrow_n which_o he_o have_v conceive_v because_o of_o the_o loss_n which_o he_o sustain_v in_o like_a state_n do_v
the_o papist_n stand_v at_o this_o day_n they_o boast_v with_o full_a mouth_n that_o they_o be_v patron_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n &_o of_o the_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n but_o when_o they_o have_v speak_v thus_o touch_v their_o zeal_n in_o the_o very_a handle_n of_o the_o cause_n they_o breathe_v out_o with_o wide_a open_a throat_n the_o smell_n of_o their_o kitchen_n but_o if_o we_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o handle_v the_o cause_n of_o godliness_n pure_o and_o in_o earnest_n let_v we_o forget_v our_o commodity_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v have_v the_o chief_a place_n for_o the_o show_n of_o profit_n do_v so_o tie_v all_o our_o sense_n with_o enticement_n that_o though_o we_o wander_v through_o all_o manner_n wickedness_n yet_o do_v we_o flatter_v ourselves_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v determine_v to_o provide_v for_o our_o own_o commodity_n who_o all_o asia_n and_o the_o world_n do_v worship_n it_o seem_v to_o demetrius_n a_o unmeet_a thing_n that_o diana_n her_o majesty_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o naught_o which_o all_o the_o world_n do_v reverence_n and_o worship_n and_o this_o be_v a_o common_a start_a hole_n for_o all_o superstitious_a person_n to_o pretend_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o multitude_n but_o true_a religion_n require_v a_o more_o steadfast_a stay_n then_o in_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o man_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o at_o this_o day_n do_v more_o keep_v back_o the_o simple_a and_o unskilful_a then_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o cast_v from_o they_o such_o ancient_a error_n as_o be_v common_o receive_v every_o where_n because_o they_o feign_v and_o imagine_v that_o that_o which_o please_v many_o though_o foolish_o and_o rash_o be_v to_o be_v count_v lawful_a for_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v not_o afraid_a bold_o to_o set_v the_o very_a name_n of_o custom_n against_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o lord_n do_v prescribe_v to_o we_o another_o manner_n of_o rule_n to_o wit_n that_o be_v content_a with_o his_o authority_n alone_o we_o do_v not_o pass_v either_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n no●_n for_o our_o own_o commodity_n nor_o for_o the_o custom_n of_o many_o nation_n 29_o and_o all_o the_o city_n be_v full_a of_o confusion_n and_o they_o rush_v into_o the_o common_a place_n with_o one_o consent_n have_v catch_v gaius_n and_o aristarchus_n man_n of_o macedonia_n paul_n his_o companion_n 30_o and_o when_o paul_n will_v have_v enter_v in_o unto_o the_o people_n the_o disciple_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o 31_o and_o certain_a also_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o asia_n which_o be_v his_o friend_n send_v unto_o he_o request_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o common_a place_n 32_o some_o therefore_o cry_v one_o thing_n and_o some_o another_o for_o the_o assembly_n be_v out_o of_o order_n and_o the_o more_o part_n know_v not_o for_o what_o cause_n they_o come_v together_o 33_o and_o some_o of_o the_o company_n draw_v forth_o alexander_n the_o jew_n thrust_v he_o forward_o and_o when_o alexander_n have_v require_v silence_n with_o the_o hand_n he_o will_v have_v excuse_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o people_n 34_o who_o when_o they_o know_v to_o be_v a_o jew_n there_o arise_v a_o shout_n of_o all_o man_n almost_o for_o the_o space_n of_o two_o hour_n cry_v great_a be_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n 29_o luke_n set_v down_o in_o this_o place_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o people_n as_o if_o it_o be_v depaint_v in_o a_o table_n like_a as_o if_o a_o thousand_o house_n shall_v be_v set_v on_o fire_n at_o a_o sudden_a so_o all_o the_o city_n be_v on_o a_o uproar_n in_o one_o moment_n and_o when_o such_o a_o tempest_n be_v once_o raise_v it_o be_v not_o easy_o stay_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n can_v avoid_v this_o mischief_n they_o must_v be_v arm_v with_o invincible_a constancy_n that_o they_o may_v bold_o suffer_v the_o tumult_n raise_v among_o the_o people_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v trouble_v as_o with_o some_o new_a and_o strange_a matter_n when_o they_o see_v that_o the_o people_n be_v unquiet_a so_o paul_n himself_o do_v elsewhere_o triumph_v that_o he_o go_v valiant_o through_o the_o midst_n of_o sedition_n 6.5_o 2._o cor._n 6.5_o nevertheless_o the_o lord_n do_v uphold_v the_o minister_n of_o his_o word_n with_o a_o excellent_a comfort_n when_o as_o they_o be_v toss_v amid_o diverse_a storm_n and_o garboil_n and_o with_o excellent_a boldness_n do_v he_o establish_v they_o when_o he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o helm_n of_o his_o church_n and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n and_o moderator_n of_o all_o tumult_n and_o storm_n so_o that_o he_o can_v stay_v the_o same_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o therefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o must_v sail_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o tempestuous_a sea_n yet_o that_o we_o must_v suffer_v this_o infamy_n as_o if_o we_o ourselves_o be_v the_o procurer_n of_o trouble_n neither_o may_v any_o thing_n lead_v we_o away_o from_o the_o right_a course_n of_o our_o duty_n so_o that_o in_o sail_v we_o shall_v be_v sore_o trouble_v yet_o will_v not_o the_o lord_n suffer_v we_o to_o suffer_v shipwreck_n furthermore_o we_o see_v that_o though_o sedition_n be_v confuse_v yet_o do_v the_o people_n always_o take_v the_o worse_a part_n as_o the_o man_n of_o ephesus_n do_v now_o catch_v gaius_n and_o aristarchus_n and_o they_o drive_v back_o alexander_n with_o their_o furious_a outcry_n whence_o come_v this_o save_v only_o because_o satan_n do_v reign_v in_o their_o heart_n so_o that_o they_o rather_o favour_v a_o evil_a cause_n there_o be_v also_o another_o reason_n because_o a_o prejudice_n conceive_v upon_o a_o false_a report_n do_v possess_v their_o mind_n so_o that_o they_o can_v abide_v to_o sift_v the_o cause_n any_o far_o 30_o and_o when_o paul_n will_v we_o may_v see_v that_o paul_n his_o constancy_n be_v couple_v with_o modesty_n when_o as_o he_o may_v well_o have_v keep_v himself_o out_o of_o sight_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n be_v he_o prepare_v to_o put_v himself_o in_o hazard_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o follow_v their_o counsel_n who_o know_v the_o state_n of_o matter_n better_o than_o he_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v keep_v back_o that_o which_o he_o determine_v to_o do_v can_v not_o have_v be_v impute_v to_o rashness_n there_o be_v no_o sedition_n raise_v through_o his_o fault_n why_o …_o de_fw-fr not_o he_o venture_v his_o life_n especial_o see_v that_o he_o do_v not_o despair_v of_o better_a success_n but_o when_o the_o brethren_n and_o such_o friend_n as_o be_v more_o skilful_a dissuade_v he_o his_o modesty_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v commend_v in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o stand_v stout_o in_o his_o purpose_n 33_o they_o draw_v out_o alexander_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o send_v forth_o this_o alexander_n to_o plead_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o that_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o bring_v he_o before_o the_o people_n that_o he_o may_v be_v murder_v nevertheless_o the_o name_n jew_n make_v he_o to_o be_v so_o hate_v that_o they_o do_v outrageous_o refuse_v whatsoever_o he_o be_v about_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o matter_n and_o cause_n yea_o he_o do_v hardly_o escape_v with_o his_o life_n in_o such_o a_o uproar_n moreover_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o this_o be_v that_o alexander_n of_o who_o paul_n make_v mention_v elsewhere_o 4.14_o 1._o tim._n 1.20_o &_o 2._o tim._n 4.14_o yet_o the_o conjecture_n seem_v to_o i_o allowable_a but_o and_o if_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v he_o l●t_v we_o learn_v by_o this_o fearful_a example_n to_o walk_v circumspect_o lest_o satan_n carry_v we_o away_o into_o like_o fall_v away_o for_o we_o see_v that_o he_o who_o be_v at_o the_o point_n to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n become_v a_o treacherous_a and_o wicked_a revolt_n 34_o great_a be_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n this_o be_v a_o clamorous_a confession_n but_o without_o any_o soundness_n neither_o do_v it_o proceed_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o heart_n for_o whence_o come_v that_o great_a divinity_n of_o diana_n whereof_o they_o speak_v save_v only_o because_o like_v mad_a man_n they_o furious_o defend_v that_o error_n which_o they_o have_v once_o receive_v it_o fare_v otherwise_o with_o true_a godliness_n that_o we_o believe_v with_o the_o heart_n unto_o righteousness_n and_o then_o do_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o mouth_n follow_v to_o salvation_n therein_o do_v the_o distemperature_n and_o mad_a stubbernenesse_n of_o all_o mad_a man_n and_o brainesicke_a fool_n differ_v from_o the_o constancy_n and_o zeal_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o our_o sluggishness_n be_v shameful_a if_o we_o be_v not_o as_o ready_a and_o stout_a in_o the_o
confession_n of_o a_o sure_a faith_n as_o be_v they_o in_o their_o filthy_a error_n for_o we_o see_v what_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n prescribe_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o david_n 106.10_o psal_n 106.10_o i_o believe_v and_o therefore_o will_v i_o speak_v 35_o and_o when_o the_o town_n clerk_n have_v pacify_v the_o multitude_n he_o say_v you_o man_n of_o ephesus_n what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o know_v not_o that_o the_o city_n of_o the_o ephesian_n be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o the_o great_a goddess_n diana_n and_o of_o the_o image_n that_o come_v down_o from_o jupiter_n 36_o and_o see_v these_o thing_n be_v out_o of_o question_n you_o must_v be_v quiet_a and_o do_v nothing_o rash_o 37_o for_o you_o have_v bring_v man_n which_o be_v neither_o churchrobber_n nor_o yet_o blasphemer_n of_o your_o goddess_n 38_o but_o and_o if_o demetrius_n and_o the_o craftsman_n that_o be_v with_o he_o have_v a_o matter_n against_o any_o man_n there_o be_v open_a assembly_n and_o there_o be_v deputy_n let_v they_o accuse_v one_o another_o 39_o but_o and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o matter_n in_o question_n it_o shall_v be_v decide_v in_o a_o lawful_a assembly_n 40_o for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v doubt_v lest_o we_o be_v accuse_v of_o this_o day_n sedition_n see_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n whereby_o we_o may_v give_v a_o reason_n of_o this_o concourse_n and_o when_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v he_o let_v the_o assembly_n depart_v 35_o luke_n show_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o tumult_n be_v so_o appea●ed_v that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o superstition_n prevail_v with_o the_o mad_a people_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v not_o hear_v for_o the_o town_n clerk_n as_o politic_a man_n use_v to_o do_v count_v it_o sufficient_a for_o he_o if_o he_o can_v by_o any_o mean_n appease_v the_o outrageous_a multitude_n nevertheless_o the_o cause_n itself_o be_v oppress_v he_o see_v undoubted_o demetrius_n his_o malice_n and_o how_o he_o have_v trouble_v the_o city_n abuse_v the_o pretence_n of_o religion_n for_o his_o own_o private_a gain_n but_o he_o touch_v not_o that_o wound_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v unknowen_a to_o the_o unskilful_a nevertheless_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v stay_v the_o uproar_n &_o contention_n he_o extoll_v the_o feign_a power_n of_o diana_n &_o maintain_v her_o superstitious_a worship_n if_o paul_n have_v be_v in_o the_o common_a place_n at_o that_o time_n he_o will_v rather_o have_v suffer_v death_n a_o hundred_o time_n then_o have_v suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o danger_n pay_v so_o dear_a for_o it_o for_o though_o the_o town_n clerk_n have_v not_o be_v by_o he_o command_v to_o speak_v thus_o yet_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v treacherous_a dissimulation_n in_o a_o public_a witness_n and_o preacher_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n the_o scribe_n affirm_v that_o the_o image_n which_o the_o ephesian_n do_v worship_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o that_o paul_n and_o his_o companion_n speak_v no_o blasphemy_n against_o their_o goddess_n can_v he_o have_v hold_v his_o peace_n but_o he_o must_v needs_o by_o his_o silence_n have_v allow_v his_o false_a excuse_n and_o this_o have_v be_v to_o shake_v hand_n with_o idolatry_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o luke_n say_v before_o that_o paul_n be_v keep_v back_o by_o the_o brethren_n and_o not_o suffer_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o common_a place_n 37_o man_n which_o be_v neither_o church_n robber_n he_o do_v both_o true_o and_o well_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v churchrobber_n but_o he_o do_v short_o after_o false_o define_v the_o kind_n of_o churchrobberie_n to_o speak_v blasphemous_o against_o diana_n for_o see_v that_o all_o superstition_n be_v profane_a and_o pollute_a it_o follow_v that_o those_o be_v sacrilegious_a person_n who_o translate_v the_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o unto_o idol_n but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o town_n clerk_n and_o that_o carnal_a be_v here_o commend_v and_o not_o his_o godliness_n for_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o this_o alone_a to_o extinguish_v the_o heat_n of_o the_o uproar_n &_o therefore_o do_v he_o at_o length_n conclude_v if_o demetrius_n have_v any_o private_a matter_n there_o be_v judgement_n seat_n and_o magistrate_n and_o that_o public_a affair_n must_v be_v handle_v in_o a_o lawful_a and_o not_o in_o a_o disorder_a assembly_n in_o a_o assembly_n gather_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o not_o in_o a_o concourse_n which_o be_v without_o consideration_n run_v together_o through_o the_o motion_n of_o one_o man_n and_o to_o satisfy_v his_o appetite_n he_o call_v they_o deputy_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n not_o that_o asia_n have_v more_o than_o one_o but_o because_o legate_n do_v sometime_o keep_v court_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o deputy_n also_o he_o appease_v they_o by_o put_v they_o in_o fear_n because_o the_o deputy_n have_v occasion_n offer_v to_o punish_v and_o fine_v the_o city_n sore_o chap._n xx._n 1_o and_o after_o the_o tumult_n be_v cease_v when_o paul_n have_v call_v unto_o he_o the_o disciple_n and_o have_v embrace_v they_o he_o take_v his_o journey_n that_o he_o may_v go_v into_o macedonia_n 2_o and_o when_o he_o have_v walk_v through_o those_o part_n and_o have_v with_o much_o speech_n exhort_v they_o he_o come_v into_o grecia_n 3_o and_o when_o he_o have_v spend_v three_o month_n there_o when_o the_o jew_n lay_v in_o wait_n for_o he_o as_o he_o be_v about_o to_o loose_v into_o syria_n he_o purpose_v to_o return_v through_o macedonia_n 4_o and_o there_o accompany_v he_o unto_o asia_n sopater_n of_o berrhea_n and_o of_o the_o thessalonian_o aristarchus_n and_o secundus_fw-la and_o caius_n of_o derbie_n and_o timotheus_n and_o of_o asia_n tichichus_n and_o trophimus_n 5_o when_o these_o be_v go_v before_o they_o stay_v for_o we_o at_o troas_n 6_o and_o we_o sail_v away_o after_o the_o day_n of_o sweet_a bread_n from_o philippi_n and_o come_v to_o they_o to_o troas_n within_o five_o day_n where_o we_o stay_v seven_o day_n 1_o luke_n declare_v in_o this_o chapter_n how_o paul_n lose_v from_o asia_n do_v again_o cross_a the_o sea_n to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o though_o whatsoever_o be_v write_v in_o this_o narration_n be_v worthy_a of_o most_o diligent_a meditation_n and_o mark_v yet_o do_v it_o need_v no_o long_a exposition_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n be_v preserve_v in_o safety_n by_o the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o god_n amid_o those_o troublesome_a tumult_n the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v as_o yet_o slender_a &_o weak_a the_o faithful_a have_v have_v experience_n of_o a_o sudden_a motion_n once_o may_v for_o just_a cause_n fear_v least_o like_a storm_n shall_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o arise_v we_o need_v not_o doubt_v that_o paul_n do_v with_o much_o ado_n depart_v from_o they_o yet_o because_o great_a necessity_n do_v draw_v he_o unto_o another_o place_n he_o be_v enforce_v to_o leave_v his_o son_n who_o be_v late_o beget_v and_o have_v as_o yet_o scarce_o escape_v shipwreck_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o rage_a sea_n as_o for_o they_o though_o they_o be_v very_o loath_a to_o forgo_v paul_n yet_o lest_o they_o do_v injury_n to_o other_o church_n they_o do_v not_o keep_v he_o back_o nor_o stay_v he_o so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o they_o be_v not_o wed_v to_o themselves_o but_o that_o they_o be_v careful_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v provide_v as_o well_o for_o their_o brethren_n as_o for_o themselves_o we_o must_v diligent_o note_v these_o example_n that_o one_o of_o we_o may_v study_v to_o help_v another_o in_o this_o miserable_a disperse_v but_o if_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o at_o any_o time_n that_o we_o be_v bereave_v of_o profitable_a help_n let_v we_o not_o doubt_v nor_o waver_v know_v that_o god_n do_v hold_v the_o helm_n of_o our_o ship_n and_o we_o must_v also_o note_v this_o that_o paul_n do_v not_o depart_v until_o he_o have_v salute_v the_o brethren_n but_o do_v rather_o strengthen_v they_o at_o his_o departure_n as_o luke_n say_v straightway_o of_o the_o macedonian_n that_o paul_n exhort_v they_o with_o many_o word_n that_o be_v not_o overfielde_n as_o if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o put_v they_o only_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o duty_n but_o as_o he_o command_v else_o where_o that_o other_o shall_v do_v he_o urge_v importunate_o and_o beat_v in_o thorough_o thing_n which_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v know_v that_o they_o may_v never_o be_v forget_v 4.2_o 2._o tim._n 4.2_o 3_o because_o the_o jew_n lay_v wait_v for_o he_o the_o lord_n do_v exercise_v his_o servant_n so_o diverse_o and_o continual_o that_o he_o set_v before_o we_o in_o he_o a_o example_n of_o most_o excellent_a constancy_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o be_v weary_v with_o the_o labour_n and_o trouble_v
deep_o imprint_v in_o their_o mind_n his_o exhortation_n for_o we_o know_v what_o great_a force_n the_o word_n and_o speech_n of_o man_n have_v which_o be_v utter_v at_o their_o departure_n or_o death_n also_o he_o will_v have_v they_o beware_v by_o this_o forwarn_n that_o they_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o his_o presence_n &_o so_o their_o faith_n shall_v faint_v through_o wearisomnes_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n now_o again_o which_o do_v begin_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o this_o world_n by_o renew_v man_n after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n until_o it_o be_v make_v perfect_a at_o length_n in_o the_o last_o resurrection_n 26_o wherefore_o i_o take_v you_o to_o record_v it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o call_v you_o to_o witness_v or_o i_o call_v you_o to_o bear_v witness_n before_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o this_o do_v he_o not_o so_o much_o for_o his_o own_o cause_n as_o that_o he_o may_v prescribe_v unto_o they_o their_o duty_n with_o great_a authority_n furthermore_o this_o place_n contain_v a_o brief_a sum_n of_o teach_v right_o and_o well_o and_o it_o exhort_v the_o teacher_n themselves_o vehement_o &_o sharp_o that_o they_o be_v diligent_a in_o their_o function_n what_o order_n must_v pastor_n than_o keep_v in_o teach_v first_o ●et_z they_o not_o esteem_v at_o their_o pleasure_n what_o be_v profitable_a to_o be_v utter_v and_o what_o to_o be_v omit_v but_o let_v they_o leave_v that_o to_o god_n alone_o to_o be_v order_v at_o his_o pleasure_n so_o shall_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n shall_v have_v none_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n again_o mortal_a man_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o mangle_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o pull_v it_o in_o piece_n that_o he_o may_v diminish_v this_o or_o that_o at_o his_o pleasure_n that_o he_o may_v obscure_v some_o thing_n and_o suppress_v many_o thing_n but_o shall_v deliver_v whatsoever_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n though_o wise_o and_o seasonablie_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o people_n yet_o plain_o and_o without_o guile_n as_o become_v a_o faithful_a &_o true_a interpreter_n of_o god_n i_o say_v that_o wisdom_n must_v be_v use_v because_o we_o must_v always_o have_v respect_n unto_o profit_n so_o there_o be_v no_o subtlety_n use_v wherein_o many_o take_v too_o great_a delight_n when_o as_o they_o turn_v and_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unto_o their_o method_n and_o forge_v to_o we_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o philosophy_n mix_v of_o the_o gospel_n &_o their_o own_o invention_n namely_o because_o this_o mixture_n be_v more_o delectable_a thence_o have_v we_o freewill_n thence_o the_o desert_n of_o work_n thence_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o providence_n and_o free_a election_n of_o god_n and_o that_o which_o we_o say_v even_o now_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n whereof_o paul_n make_v mention_v be_v include_v in_o his_o word_n &_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v no_o where_o else_o for_o many_o thing_n be_v keep_v from_o we_o in_o this_o life_n the_o perfect_a &_o full_a manifestation_n whereof_o be_v defer_v until_o that_o day_n wherein_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v with_o new_a eye_n face_n to_o face_n therefore_o those_o do_v set_v forth_o the_o will_n of_o god_n who_o interpreat_a the_o scripture_n faithful_o &_o out_o of_o they_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o faith_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o all_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n and_o as_o we_o say_v of_o late_a that_o those_o be_v condemn_v by_o this_o sentence_n 13.12_o 1._o cor._n 13.12_o who_o dispute_v philosophicallie_o lest_o they_o shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o odious_a do_v corrupt_a with_o their_o leaven_n the_o purity_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o both_o sharp_o and_o sore_o do_v paul_n thunder_n against_o they_o who_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o persecution_n do_v speak_v only_o doubtful_o and_o dark_o i_o be_o clean_a from_o the_o blood_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o place_n of_o ezechiel_n 3.18.20_o ezec._n 3.18.20_o where_o god_n denounce_v that_o his_o prophet_n shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o wicked_a unless_o he_o exhort_v they_o unto_o repentance_n for_o upon_o this_o condition_n do_v he_o appoint_v pastor_n over_o his_o church_n that_o if_o any_o thing_n perish_v through_o their_o negligence_n a_o account_n may_v be_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n yea_o that_o unless_o they_o show_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n without_o guile_n and_o crook_n the_o destruction_n of_o those_o who_o go_v astray_o may_v be_v impute_v unto_o they_o those_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v wonderful_a dull_a who_o such_o a_o sharp_a threaten_n can_v awake_v wherefore_o the_o epicurish_n impiety_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n do_v the_o more_o bewray_v itself_o where_o though_o they_o crake_v and_o brag_v of_o their_o honourable_a title_n yet_o they_o think_v no_o more_o upon_o give_v of_o a_o account_n for_o so_o many_o soul_n which_o perish_v than_o if_o there_o sit_v no_o judge_n in_o heaven_n neither_o be_v their_o ungodliness_n any_o whit_n less_o filthy_a before_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o that_o be_v give_v only_o to_o devour_v sheep_n they_o usurp_v the_o name_n of_o pastor_n furthermore_o the_o lord_n show_v how_o dear_a soul_n be_v to_o he_o see_v that_o he_o do_v so_o sharp_o punish_v the_o pastors_n sluggishness_n for_o their_o destruction_n but_o we_o see_v what_o small_a account_n many_o man_n make_v of_o their_o own_o salvation_n for_o which_o even_o god_n himself_o do_v vouchsafe_v to_o be_v careful_a 28_o therefore_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n wherein_o t●_n 〈◊〉_d ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o blood_n 29_o for_o i_o know_v this_o that_o after_o my_o departure_n grievous_a wolf_n will_v enter_v in_o among_o you_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n 30_o and_o of_o your_o own_o self_n shall_v arise_v man_n speak_v perverse_a thing_n that_o they_o may_v draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o 31_o for_o which_o cause_n watch_v you_o remember_v that_o by_o the_o space_n of_o three_o year_n i_o cease_v not_o night_n and_o day_n to_o warn_v every_o one_o of_o you_o with_o tear_n 32_o and_o now_o brethren_n i_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n who_o be_v able_a to_o build_v far_o and_o to_o give_v you_o a_o inheritance_n among_o all_o those_o who_o be_v sanctify_v 28_o take_v heed_n therefore_o he_o do_v now_o apply_v his_o speech_n unto_o they_o &_o by_o many_o reason_n show_v that_o they_o must_v watch_v diligent_o and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o so_o careful_a but_o because_o necessity_n do_v so_o require_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o they_o be_v set_v the_o second_o because_o they_o be_v call_v unto_o this_o function_n not_o by_o mortal_a man_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o because_o it_o be_v no_o small_a honour_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o four_o because_o the_o lord_n do_v declare_v by_o a_o evident_a testimony_n what_o account_n he_o do_v make_v of_o the_o church_n see_v that_o he_o have_v redeem_v it_o with_o his_o blood_n as_o touch_v the_o first_o he_o do_v not_o only_o command_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o flock_n but_o first_o to_o themselves_o for_o that_o man_n will_v never_o be_v careful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o other_o man_n who_o will_v neglect_v his_o own_o and_o in_o vain_a shall_v that_o man_n prick_v forward_o other_o to_o live_v godly_o who_o will_v himself_o show_v no_o desire_n of_o godliness_n yea_o that_o man_n will_v not_o take_v pain_n with_o his_o flock_n who_o forget_v himself_o see_v he_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v careful_a for_o the_o flock_n to_o they_o commit_v paul_n command_v &_o warn_v that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o keep_v himself_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v as_o faithful_a towards_o his_o flock_n as_o he_o ought_v for_o we_o say_v that_o paul_n reason_v from_o their_o call_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v pain_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereof_o they_o have_v the_o government_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o may_v not_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o like_v best_a neither_o be_v they_o free_a after_o they_o be_v make_v pastor_n but_o they_o be_v bind_v public_o to_o all_o
the_o flock_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n by_o the_o very_a word_n he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o they_o be_v place_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o watch_n tower_n that_o they_o may_v watch_v for_o the_o common_a safety_n of_o all_o man_n but_o paul_n stand_v principal_o upon_o this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o appoint_v by_o man_n but_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n for_o which_o cause_n they_o must_v be_v the_o more_o diligent_a and_o careful_a because_o they_o must_v give_v a_o straight_a account_n before_o that_o high_a seat_n of_o judgement_n for_o the_o more_o excellent_a the_o dignity_n of_o that_o lord_n &_o master_n who_o we_o serve_v be_v the_o more_o reverence_n do_v we_o give_v he_o natural_o and_o the_o reverence_n itself_o do_v sharpen_v our_o study_n and_o diligence_n moreover_o though_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n choose_v from_o ●he_n beginning_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n yet_o do_v he_o always_o challenge_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o himself_o not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o only_a governor_n thereof_o but_o also_o know_v that_o the_o uncomparable_a treasure_n of_o salvation_n do_v come_v from_o he_o alone_o for_o he_o be_v rob_v of_o his_o glory_n if_o we_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v bring_v unto_o we_o either_o by_o chance_n or_o by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n or_o their_o industry_n but_o this_o do_v paul_n attribute_v peculiar_o to_o the_o spirit_n by_o who_o god_n do_v govern_v his_o church_n &_o who_o be_v to_o every_o man_n a_o secret_a witness_n of_o his_o call_n in_o his_o own_o conscience_n concern_v the_o word_n overseer_n or_o bishop_n we_o must_v brief_o note_v this_o that_o paul_n call_v all_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n by_o this_o name_n as_o well_o one_o as_o other_o whence_o we_o gather_v that_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n bishop_n differ_v nothing_o from_o elder_n but_o that_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v through_o vice_n &_o corruption_n that_o those_o who_o be_v chief_a in_o every_o city_n begin_v to_o be_v call_v bishop_n i_o call_v it_o corruption_n not_o because_o it_o be_v evil_a that_o some_o one_o man_n shall_v be_v chief_a in_o every_o college_n or_o company_n but_o because_o this_o boldness_n be_v intolerable_a when_o man_n by_o wrest_v the_o name_n of_o the_o scripture_n unto_o their_o custom_n doubt_v not_o to_o change_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n the_o greek_a word_n poiemainein_a do_v signify_v to_o feed_v but_o by_o a_o fit_n similitude_n it_o be_v translate_v unto_o every_o kind_n of_o government_n and_o we_o have_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o third_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o function_n as_o the_o same_o paul_n tell_v timotheus_n elsewhere_o that_o he_o take_v heed_n &_o see_v how_o he_o ought_v to_o behave_v himself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o truth_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o time_n to_o be_v idle_a in_o such_o a_o weighty_a call_n &_o that_o those_o be_v less_o excusable_a who_o god_n have_v make_v steward_n of_o his_o family_n the_o high_a that_o degree_n of_o honour_n be_v unless_o they_o be_v correspondent_a to_o so_o great_a dignity_n that_o be_v unless_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n diligent_o now_o if_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v feed_v the_o church_n the_o hierarchy_n of_o papistry_n be_v ridiculous_a wherein_o bishop_n be_v proud_a of_o their_o paint_a sheath_n &_o vain_a title_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o meddle_v with_o the_o function_n of_o teach_v no_o not_o for_o fashion_n sake_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v the_o 4._o reason_n whereby_o paul_n do_v careful_o prick_v forward_o the_o pastor_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n diligent_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v no_o small_a pledge_n of_o his_o love_n towards_o the_o church_n in_o shed_v his_o own_o blood_n for_o it_o whereby_o it_o appear_v how_o precious_a it_o be_v to_o he_o &_o sure_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o ought_v more_o vehement_o to_o urge_v pastor_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n joyful_o then_o if_o they_o consider_v that_o the_o price_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o for_o hereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o unless_o they_o take_v pain_n faithful_o in_o the_o church_n the_o lose_a soul_n be_v not_o only_o impute_v to_o they_o but_o they_o be_v also_o guilty_a of_o sacrilege_n because_o they_o have_v profane_v the_o holy_a blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o have_v make_v the_o redemption_n get_v by_o he_o to_o be_v of_o none_o effect_n so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v and_o this_o be_v a_o most_o cruel_a offence_n if_o through_o our_o sluggishness_n the_o death_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o become_v vile_a or_o base_a but_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o be_v also_o abolish_v &_o perish_v and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n have_v purchase_v the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o he_o will_v have_v it_o remain_v whole_o to_o himself_o because_o it_o be_v meet_v &_o right_a that_o he_o possess_v those_o who_o he_o have_v redeem_v notwithstanding_o we_o must_v also_o remember_v that_o all_o mankind_n be_v the_o bondslave_n of_o satan_n until_o christ_n set_v we_o free_a from_o his_o tyranny_n gather_v we_o into_o the_o inheritance_n of_o his_o father_n but_o because_o the_o speech_n which_o paul_n use_v seem_v to_o be_v somewhat_o hard_a we_o must_v see_v in_o what_o sense_n he_o say_v that_o god_n purchase_v the_o church_n with_o his_o blood_n for_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a than_o to_o feign_v or_o imagine_v god_n to_o be_v mortal_a or_o to_o have_v a_o body_n but_o in_o this_o speech_n he_o commend_v the_o unity_n of_o person_n in_o christ_n for_o because_o there_o be_v distinct_a nature_n in_o christ_n the_o scripture_n do_v sometime_o recite_v that_o apart_o by_o itself_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o either_o but_o when_o it_o set_v god_n before_o we_o make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n it_o do_v not_o separate_v the_o human_a nature_n from_o the_o godhead_n notwithstanding_o because_o again_o two_o nature_n be_v so_o unite_v in_o christ_n that_o they_o make_v one_o person_n that_o be_v unproperlie_o translate_v sometime_o unto_o the_o one_o which_o do_v true_o and_o in_o deed_n belong_v to_o the_o other_o as_o in_o this_o place_n paul_n do_v attribute_v blood_n to_o god_n because_o the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o we_o be_v also_o god_n this_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v call_v of_o the_o old_a writer_n communicatio_fw-la idiomatum_fw-la because_o the_o property_n of_o the_o one_o nature_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o other_o and_o i_o say_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v manifest_o express_v one_o person_n of_o christ_n lest_o we_o imagine_v he_o to_o be_v double_a which_o nestorius_n do_v in_o time_n past_a attempt_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v a_o confusion_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n which_o eutiche_n go_v about_o to_o bring_v in_o or_o which_o the_o spanish_a dog_n seruetus_fw-la have_v at_o this_o time_n invent_v who_o make_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n nothing_o else_o but_o a_o form_n or_o image_n of_o the_o human_a nature_n which_o he_o dream_v to_o have_v always_o shine_v in_o god_n 29_o for_o i_o know_v paul_n do_v now_o exhort_v the_o ephesian_n to_o watch_v diligenly_a by_o the_o necessity_n which_o be_v a_o most_o sharp_a prick_v for_o he_o say_v that_o grievous_a wolf_n be_v ready_a to_o invade_v the_o sheepfold_a this_o be_v a_o thing_n always_o incident_a to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v hate_v of_o wolf_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o time_n to_o sleep_v but_o the_o more_o and_o the_o more_o hurtful_a those_o be_v who_o break_v in_o the_o more_o watchful_a must_v the_o pastor_n be_v for_o god_n do_v sometime_o release_v some_o part_n of_o trouble_n that_o the_o flock_n may_v be_v feed_v quiet_o and_o peaceable_o and_o as_o when_o the_o weather_n be_v fair_a &_o clear_v the_o sheep_n be_v feed_v more_o safe_o in_o the_o field_n and_o there_o be_v more_o danger_n when_o the_o air_n be_v cloudy_a &_o dark_a so_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v sometime_o some_o fair_a weather_n grant_v to_o it_o after_o that_o come_v a_o troublesome_a time_n which_o be_v more_o fit_a for_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o wolf_n therefore_o paul_n do_v mean_a that_o it_o stand_v they_o upon_o to_o be_v more_o watchful_a than_o they_o have_v be_v hitherto_o because_o great_a danger_n hang_v over_o their_o
be_v the_o spirit_n contrary_a to_o himself_o that_o he_o do_v now_o loose_a paul_n who_o he_o hold_v bind_v inward_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o those_o who_o excel_v in_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n be_v some_o time_n destitute_a of_o judgement_n or_o strength_n the_o lord_n show_v to_o these_o brethren_n of_o who_o luke_n make_v mention_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v yet_o nevertheless_o they_o know_v not_o what_o be_v expedient_a and_o what_o paul_n his_o calling_n do_v require_v because_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o gift_n do_v not_o reach_v so_o far_o and_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v his_o servant_n admonish_v of_o purpose_n partly_o that_o through_o long_a meditation_n he_o may_v be_v better_o furnish_v and_o prepare_v to_o suffer_v whatsoever_o shall_v come_v partly_o that_o his_o constancy_n may_v more_o plain_o appear_v when_o as_o be_v certify_v by_o prophecy_n of_o the_o doleful_a event_n he_o do_v notwithstanding_o witting_o and_o willling_o make_v haste_n to_o endure_v whatsoever_o thing_n shall_v befall_v he_o 5_o with_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n this_o be_v no_o small_a testimony_n of_o love_n in_o that_o they_o accompany_v paul_n out_o of_o the_o city_n with_o their_o wife_n &_o child_n which_o thing_n luke_n do_v report_n partly_o that_o he_o may_v commend_v their_o godliness_n according_a as_o it_o deserve_v partly_o that_o he_o may_v declare_v that_o paul_n have_v that_o honour_n give_v he_o which_o be_v due_a to_o he_o whence_o we_o do_v also_o gather_v that_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o then_o to_o provide_v for_o his_o own_o commodity_n see_v that_o he_o be_v not_o keep_v back_o with_o so_o great_a good_a will_n which_o be_v a_o pleasant_a bait_n to_o entice_v he_o to_o stay_v and_o we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o solemn_a custom_n of_o pray_v in_o weighty_a affair_n &_o that_o be_v certify_v by_o god_n of_o the_o danger_n they_o be_v more_o stir_v up_o to_o pray_v 7_o and_o when_o we_o have_v finish_v our_o course_n from_o tyrus_n we_o come_v down_o to_o ptolomais_n and_o after_o that_o we_o have_v salute_v the_o brethren_n we_o abide_v with_o they_o one_o day_n 8_o and_o on_o the_o morrow_n we_o which_o be_v with_o paul_n depart_v and_o come_v to_o caesarea_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o philip_n the_o evangelist_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o we_o abide_v with_o he_o 9_o and_o this_o man_n have_v four_o daughter_n virgin_n which_o do_v prophesy_v 10_o and_o when_o we_o abide_v many_o day_n there_o come_v a_o certain_a prophet_n from_o jury_n name_v agabus_n 11_o when_o he_o be_v come_v to_o we_o he_o take_v paul_n his_o girdle_n and_o bind_v his_o own_o foot_n and_o hand_n he_o say_v thus_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o man_n which_o owe_v this_o girdle_n shall_v the_o jew_n thus_o bind_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o shall_v deliver_v he_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o gentile_n 12_o and_o when_o we_o have_v hear_v these_o thing_n both_o we_o and_o also_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v of_o that_o place_n request_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n 13_o then_o paul_n answer_v and_o say_v what_o do_v you_o weep_v and_o afflict_v my_o heart_n i_o true_o be_o ready_a not_o to_o be_v bind_v only_o but_o also_o to_o die_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 14_o and_o when_o he_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v we_o be_v quiet_a say_v the_o will_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v do_v 7_o luke_n do_v brief_o declare_v that_o paul_n be_v also_o receive_v at_o ptolomais_n by_o the_o brethren_n this_o be_v a_o city_n of_o phenicia_n stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n coast_n not_o far_o from_o the_o border_n of_o judea_n from_o which_o paul_n and_o his_o companion_n have_v no_o long_a journey_n to_o caesarea_n but_o if_o the_o reader_n be_v dispose_v to_o know_v far_o touch_v the_o situation_n of_o region_n let_v they_o resort_v unto_o the_o describer_n of_o place_n and_o country_n furthermore_o he_o say_v that_o when_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n they_o lodge_v with_o philip_n who_o he_o call_v a_o evangelist_n though_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o deacons_n 6.5_o ch._n 6.5_o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n by_o this_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o that_o deaconshippe_n be_v a_o office_n which_o continue_v but_o for_o a_o time_n because_o it_o have_v not_o otherwise_o be_v lawful_a for_o philip_n to_o forsake_v jerusalem_n and_o to_o go_v to_o caesarea_n and_o in_o this_o place_n he_o be_v set_v before_o we_o not_o as_o a_o voluntary_a forsaker_n of_o his_o office_n but_o as_o one_o to_o who_o a_o great_a and_o more_o excellent_a charge_n be_v commit_v the_o evangelist_n in_o my_o judgement_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n between_o apostle_n and_o doctor_n for_o it_o be_v a_o function_n next_o to_o the_o apostle_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o all_o place_n and_o not_o to_o have_v any_o certain_a place_n of_o abode_n only_o the_o degree_n of_o honour_n be_v inferior_a for_o when_o paul_n describe_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n he_o do_v so_o put_v they_o after_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o show_v that_o they_o have_v more_o roomth_v give_v they_o where_o they_o may_v teach_v than_o the_o pastor_n 4.11_o ephes_n 4.11_o who_o be_v tie_v to_o certain_a place_n therefore_o philip_n do_v for_o a_o time_n exercise_v the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n at_o jerusalem_n who_o the_o church_n think_v afterward_o to_o be_v a_o meet_a man_n to_o who_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v commit_v 9_o four_o daughter_n this_o be_v add_v for_o the_o commendation_n of_o philip_n not_o only_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o his_o house_n be_v well_o order_v but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v famous_a and_o excellent_a through_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n for_o assure_o it_o be_v no_o small_a gift_n to_o have_v four_o daughter_n all_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n by_o this_o mean_v the_o lord_n mean_v to_o beautify_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o he_o raise_v up_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v prophecy_n have_v now_o almost_o cease_v many_o year_n among_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v more_o attentive_a &_o desirous_a to_o hear_v the_o new_a voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o see_v that_o prophesi_v which_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n quite_o cease_v do_v now_o after_o long_a time_n return_v again_o it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o a_o more_o perfect_a state_n notwithstanding_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o it_o cease_v short_o after_o for_o god_n do_v support_v the_o old_a people_n with_o diverse_a foretelling_n until_o christ_n shall_v make_v a_o end_n of_o all_o prophecy_n therefore_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o new_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v thus_o furnish_v and_o beautify_v with_o this_o furniture_n that_o all_o man_n may_v know_v that_o that_o promise_a visitation_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v present_a and_o it_o be_v also_o expedient_a that_o it_o shall_v last_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n lest_o the_o faithful_a shall_v always_o wait_v for_o some_o far_a thing_n or_o jest_n that_o curious_a wit_n may_v have_v occasion_n give_v to_o seek_v or_o invent_v some_o new_a thing_n ever_o now_o and_o then_o for_o we_o know_v that_o when_o that_o ability_n and_o skill_n be_v take_v away_o there_o be_v notwithstanding_o many_o brainsick_a fellow_n who_o do_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v prophet_n &_o also_o it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o forwardness_n of_o man_n do_v deprive_v the_o church_n of_o this_o gift_n but_o that_o one_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v sufficient_a in_o that_o god_n by_o take_v away_o prophecy_n do_v testify_v that_o the_o end_n and_o perfection_n be_v present_a in_o christ_n &_o it_o be_v uncertain_a how_o these_o maid_n do_v execute_v the_o office_n of_o prophesy_v save_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v so_o guide_v and_o govern_v they_o that_o he_o do_v not_o overthrow_v the_o order_n which_o he_o himself_o set_v down_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v not_o suffer_v woman_n to_o bear_v any_o public_a office_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o do_v prophesy_v at_o home_n or_o in_o some_o private_a place_n without_o the_o common_a assembly_n 10_o a_o certain_a prophet_n though_o luke_n do_v not_o plain_o express_v the_o same_o yet_o do_v i_o conject_v that_o this_o agabus_n be_v the_o same_o of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o xi_o chapter_n who_o foretell_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v famine_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o claudius_n caesar_n 11.28_o sap._n 11.28_o and_o whenas_o luke_n call_v
be_v in_o popery_n hot_a be_v quiet_a only_o so_o long_o as_o they_o join_v hand_n in_o hand_n to_o oppress_v the_o gospel_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v more_o courageous_a to_o foster_v &_o nourish_v truth_n that_o be_v join_v together_o they_o may_v the_o better_o resist_v also_o we_o gather_v by_o this_o what_o manner_n of_o peace_n the_o scripture_n commend_v unto_o us._n christ_n say_v that_o the_o peace_n maker_n be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n &_o this_o be_v true_a that_o they_o must_v do_v what_o they_o can_v 5.9_o mat._n 5.9_o to_o bring_v all_o man_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v together_o under_o the_o lord_n yet_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o we_o may_v fight_v under_o the_o banner_n of_o the_o same_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n stir_v up_o the_o wicked_a that_o they_o may_v like_o madianites_fw-la one_o slay_v another_o so_o that_o both_o simplicity_n of_o zeal_n 7.22_o jud._n 7.22_o &_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n direct_v we_o hither_o one_o part_n be_v sadducee_n we_o see_v here_o again_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n how_o deform_v and_o confuse_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v at_o that_o day_n faith_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n nothing_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o faith_n then_o agreement_n nothing_o more_o contrary_a than_o sect_n and_o this_o thing_n must_v needs_o follow_v when_o every_o man_n set_v aside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v draw_v his_o disciple_n unto_o his_o own_o invention_n for_o there_o be_v no_o other_o holy_a bond_n of_o unity_n than_o the_o natural_a and_o plain_a truth_n of_o god_n so_o soon_o as_o man_n depart_v from_o that_o no_o marvel_n if_o they_o be_v despearse_v and_o draw_v hither_o and_o thither_o like_o member_n pull_v a_o sunder_o therefore_o the_o beginning_n of_o sect_n among_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o law_n like_v as_o the_o lord_n do_v revenge_v the_o profanation_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v corrupt_v with_o diverse_a invention_n of_o man_n with_o like_a punishment_n in_o popery_n wherefore_o we_o must_v the_o more_o fear_n least_o horrible_a &_o more_o lamentable_a scatter_n hang_v over_o our_o head_n than_o be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o time_n of_o popery_n whereof_o there_o appear_v some_o token_n and_o no_o marvel_n see_v we_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o wrath_n so_o many_o way_n with_o our_o unthankfulness_n but_o though_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n be_v blot_v and_o blur_v with_o many_o spot_v and_o blotte_n and_o what_o manner_n of_o deformity_n soever_o fall_v out_o hereafter_o let_v we_o comfort_v ourselves_o with_o this_o that_o as_o god_n be_v careful_a then_o to_o deliver_v the_o church_n wonderful_o from_o destruction_n so_o through_o his_o grace_n there_o shall_v always_o some_o seed_n continue_v it_o can_v be_v in_o deed_n but_o that_o godly_a mind_n will_v somewhat_o despair_v when_o they_o see_v thing_n so_o far_o out_o of_o order_n but_o let_v we_o learn_v straightway_o to_o hold_v up_o that_o buckler_n that_o the_o lord_n who_o in_o such_o a_o thick_a mist_n of_o error_n in_o such_o a_o heap_n of_o superstition_n in_o the_o unbridled_a licenciousnes_n of_o sect_n do_v preserve_v his_o church_n among_o the_o jew_n will_v never_o suffer_v the_o same_o to_o be_v quite_o put_v out_o whole_o in_o the_o world_n the_o same_o thing_n do_v likewise_o happen_v in_o popery_n for_o when_o as_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v overthrow_v there_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n be_v oppress_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v throw_v down_o and_o ungodliness_n do_v open_o reign_v yet_o god_n do_v save_o certain_a hide_a remnant_n and_o there_o be_v always_o some_o wheat_n in_o the_o chaff_n it_o be_v very_o profitable_a to_o confer_v these_o example_n together_o when_o as_o we_o inveigh_v at_o this_o day_n against_o popery_n the_o hire_a patron_n thereof_o cry_v out_o on_o the_o otherside_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a than_o that_o we_o shall_v imagine_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v extinguish_v during_o many_o age_n as_o if_o we_o do_v imagine_v that_o god_n have_v no_o people_n leave_v when_o those_o have_v forsake_v he_o who_o ought_v to_o have_v maintain_v his_o pure_a worship_n yea_o we_o complain_v that_o those_o tyrant_n do_v corrupt_v the_o church_n that_o the_o temple_n be_v by_o they_o profane_v so_o that_o it_o do_v not_o great_o differ_v from_o a_o hogsty_n that_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n be_v scatter_v abroad_o and_o his_o sheepfold_n break_v down_o final_o that_o the_o church_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o lord_n know_v his_o elect_a though_o they_o be_v disperse_v and_o do_v browed_a they_o under_o his_o wing_n and_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o foolish_o the_o papist_n brag_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o title_n of_o honour_n in_o that_o not_o the_o common_a sort_n or_o any_o private_a man_n but_o the_o priest_n themselves_o do_v in_o time_n past_o divide_v the_o jewishe_a church_n by_o deadly_a dissension_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v afraid_a stout_o to_o resist_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o all_o his_o adherent_n with_o who_o we_o have_v the_o same_o cumbate_n which_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v with_o the_o priest_n of_o their_o time_n and_o as_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o keep_v back_o holy_a man_n but_o that_o they_o do_v molest_v the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o wicked_a priest_n so_o we_o must_v not_o be_v terrify_v with_o vain_a visure_n under_o which_o the_o papist_n do_v vain_o boast_v see_v they_o have_v notwithstanding_o cast_v from_o they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o people_n be_v then_o divide_v into_o three_o sect_n but_o luke_n do_v only_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o pharisy_n and_o sadducee_n omit_v the_o essenes_n because_o it_o be_v most_o fit_a for_o his_o purpose_n thus_o to_o do_v and_o though_o this_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n concern_v their_o name_n that_o the_o former_a take_v their_o name_n of_o separate_v because_o they_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o company_n of_o other_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o feign_a holiness_n and_o that_o the_o second_o sort_n take_v their_o name_n of_o righteousness_n as_o if_o they_o be_v call_v zeduchim_n notwithstanding_o for_o my_o own_o part_n as_o i_o have_v say_v elsewhere_o i_o be_o rather_o of_o their_o mind_n who_o s●y_n that_o the_o pharisy_n take_v their_o name_n of_o interpret_n for_o phrus_n signify_v exposition_n whereupon_o also_o interpreter_n be_v call_v phruschim_n &_o we_o know_v that_o the_o pharisy_n being_n not_o content_a with_o the_o natural_a doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n &_o prophet_n do_v put_v in_o many_o invention_n which_o they_o say_v they_o receive_v of_o the_o father_n 8_o the_o sadducee_n say_v though_o luke_n make_v mention_n of_o 3._o point_n wherein_o these_o sect_n do_v dissent_v yet_o short_o after_o he_o bring_v they_o to_o 2._o because_o there_o be_v like_a respect_n to_o be_v have_v of_o spirit_n &_o of_o angel_n therefore_o he_o say_v that_o the_o pharisee_n do_v confess_v both_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o dead_a shall_v rise_v again_o and_o that_o humane_a and_o angelical_a spirit_n be_v immortal_a and_o here_o luke_n declare_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o apostle_n profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o pharisee_fw-mi not_o because_o he_o do_v subscribe_v to_o all_o their_o invention_n but_o only_o in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a we_o know_v how_o sharp_o christ_n reprove_v their_o error_n therefore_o it_o have_v be_v good_a that_o some_o exception_n have_v be_v add_v lest_o any_o man_n may_v think_v that_o paul_n be_v one_o with_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n now_o though_o the_o saducee_n do_v deny_v the_o resurrection_n yet_o may_v we_o not_o think_v that_o they_o be_v altogether_o like_a to_o the_o epicure_n 22.29_o mat._n 22.29_o for_o they_o do_v confess_v that_o the_o world_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o every_o man_n be_v reward_v for_o his_o work_n in_o this_o point_n they_o be_v sound_a than_o the_o epicure_n but_o they_o do_v dote_v too_o gross_o when_o they_o include_v the_o reward_n of_o righteousness_n &_o the_o punishment_n of_o wickedness_n in_o this_o life_n for_o that_o i_o may_v omit_v the_o scripture_n experience_n do_v teach_v that_o as_o well_o the_o godly_a as_o the_o ungodly_a be_v either_o punish_v with_o many_o misery_n or_o else_o gentle_o deal_v withal_o and_o that_o the_o wicked_a do_v oftentimes_o live_v in_o wealth_n and_o pleasure_n when_o as_o the_o worshipper_n of_o god_n be_v oftentimes_o miserable_o torment_v as_o it_o be_v psalm_n 73._o 73.4_o psal_n 73.4_o therefore_o whosoever_o esteem_v the_o
year_n of_o age_n 1._o 1._o 2._o 1._o how_o dangerous_a the_o denial_n of_o christ_n be_v 3._o 17._o and_o 5._o 40._o and_o 26._o 10._o christ_n his_o come_n be_v comfortable_a to_o the_o godly_a but_o fearful_a to_o the_o wicked_a 14._o 23._o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v common_a to_o christ_n 9_o 5._o christ_n ascension_n be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n 1._o 9_o how_o great_a the_o authority_n of_o christ_n be_v 3._o 23._o christ_n body_n be_v not_o infinite_a 1._o 11._o how_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n 1._o 11._o and_o 7._o 56._o all_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n 20._o 35._o how_o great_a the_o dignity_n of_o christ_n be_v 10._o 38._o and_o 17._o 31._o how_o necessary_a the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n his_o doctrine_n be_v 1._o 1._o the_o sum_n of_o christ_n his_o doctrine_n 1._o 3._o christ_n glory_n be_v wonderful_a 8._o 33._o what_o great_a account_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n 11._o 25._o and_o 26._o 10._o christ_n his_o grace_n reach_v unto_o all_o degree_n 17._o 11_o christ_n his_o grace_n must_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o presence_n 26._o 19_o how_o we_o must_v handle_v the_o contemner_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n 13._o 40._o how_o gentle_o christ_n deal_v with_o those_o that_o be_v he_o 10._o 41._o christ_n his_o innocency_n 13._o 28._o how_o great_a the_o majesty_n of_o christ_n be_v 2._o 34._o and_o 9_o 3._o and_o 13._o 25._o to_o what_o end_n christ_n his_o miracle_n do_v tend_v 10._o 38._o christ_n his_o death_n be_v slanderous_a 5._o 30._o christ_n his_o death_n be_v foretell_v 8._o 32._o christ_n death_n be_v lively_a 8._o 32._o christ_n his_o death_n be_v voluntary_a 8._o 37._o to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n 9_o 15_o christ_n his_o office_n 1._o 1._o 5._o and_o 2._o 33._o and_o 3._o 25._o and_o 10._o 43._o and_o 13._o 38._o and_o 17_o 3._o and_o 26._o 22._o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v in_o time_n past_o shadow_v by_o figure_n 21._o 7._o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v eternal_a 2._o 35._o &_o 8._o 33._o and_o 13._o 34._o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v spiritual_a 17._o 7_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v never_o quiet_a in_o the_o world_n 4._o 25._o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n 1._o 6._o the_o ornament_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n 21._o 9_o the_o perfection_n of_o christ_n his_o kingdom_n be_v defer_v till_o the_o last_o day_n 3._o 21._o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v true_a 13._o 30._o 33._o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v a_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o 21._o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o accomplish_n of_o the_o gospel_n 4._o 33._o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n his_o resurrection_n be_v very_o necessary_a 1._o 3._o the_o use_n of_o christ_n resurrection_n 13._o 34._o the_o voluntary_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n 8._o 32_o christ_n triumph_n in_o death_n 8._o 33._o christ_n his_o victory_n get_v of_o his_o adversary_n 8._o 33._o christ_n life_n last_v ever_o ibid._n the_o force_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n 9_o 40._o the_o difference_n between_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n 3._o 13._o the_o compare_v of_o christ_n and_o john_n baptist_n together_o 1._o 5._o the_o difference_n between_o christ_n &_o the_o pastor_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n 1._o 5._o and_o 7._o 36._o and_o 11._o 16._o all_o thing_n be_v subject_a to_o christ_n 7._o 59_o and_o 9_o 5._o christianity_n can_v be_v without_o doctrine_n 9_o 36._o the_o true_a rule_n of_o christianity_n 1._o 1._o the_o sum_n of_o christianity_n 1._o 3._o and_o 2._o 38._o and_o 8._o 32._o christian_n be_v sometime_o call_v disciple_n 9_o 36._o &_o 14._o 23._o &_o 18._o 22._o &_o 21_o 4._o who_o be_v true_a christian_n 14._o 23._o &_o 15._o 22._o how_o far_o forth_o christian_n ought_v to_o flee_v persecution_n 11._o 20._o chrysostom_n place_n 8._o 33._o 36._o &_o 18._o 3_o cicero_n place_n 9_o 25._o and_o 17._o 21._o in_o what_o sense_n circumcision_n be_v call_v the_o eternal_a covenant_n 15._o 9_o there_o have_v always_o be_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n 23._o 6._o how_o hurtful_a domestical_a adversary_n be_v 15._o 1._o &_o 20_o 30._o how_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v accomplish_v 1._o 17._o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o 15._o the_o warfare_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v 3._o 21._o four_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o 42._o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o no_o long_a continuance_n 12._o 1._o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v avouch_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n 8._o 33._o the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v sore_o punish_v 1._o 20._o &_o 9_o 5._o why_o the_o church_n do_v err_v so_o long_o 14._o 16._o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o the_o election_n of_o min._n 6._o 5._o the_o church_n have_v always_o something_o which_o may_v be_v reform_v 6._o 1._o the_o church_n be_v assault_v on_o every_o side_n for_o diverse_a cause_n 12._o 3._o how_o hard_a and_o laborious_a the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 18._o 11._o the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v stable_n in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n 2._o 17._o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n 7._o 30._o look_v the_o state_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o true_a and_o right_o order_v of_o the_o church_n 15._o 16._o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o christ_n 10._o 42._o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1._o 18._o the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n 9_o 31._o the_o church_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o building_n 4._o 11._o the_o church_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n 9_o 31._o the_o domestical_a church_n 10._o 2._o the_o church_n gather_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n 15._o 16._o the_o church_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n gather_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n 9_o 43_o how_o precious_a the_o church_n be_v to_o god_n 20._o 28._o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v without_o discipline_n 3._o 1._o the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o a_o ordinary_a ministry_n 14._o 23._o how_o the_o church_n increase_v 1._o 15._o &_o 2._o 41._o &_o 4._o 32._o &_o 5._o 14._o and_o 6._o 1._o 7._o and_o 9_o 32._o and_o 11._o 19_o and_o 13._o 49._o and_o 16._o 5._o 16._o and_o 17._o 12._o and_o 19_o 1._o 20._o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n among_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2._o 7._o the_o horrible_a dissipation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n 23._o 2._o principal_a church_n serve_v not_o a_o little_a to_o keep_v other_o church_n in_o order_n 15._o 36_o how_o far_o we_o must_v imitate_v the_o example_n of_o church_n 15._o 1._o how_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a the_o unity_n of_o church_n be_v 8._o 14._o circumcision_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n a_o token_n and_o pledge_n of_o free_a adoption_n 7._o 8._o whence_o some_o gather_v that_o the_o jew_n ought_v at_o this_o day_n to_o observe_v circumcision_n with_o the_o appurtenance_n thereof_o 15._o 21._o and_o 16._o 3._o common_a for_o that_o which_o be_v profane_a 10._o 14_o the_o complaint_n of_o gregory_n nazianzene_n of_o the_o success_n of_o counsel_n 15._o 2._o brotherly_o concord_n be_v commend_v 1._o 14_o and_o 4._o 32._o auricular_a confession_n of_o the_o papist_n 19_o 19_o the_o conscience_n have_v two_o part_n 24._o 16._o security_n of_o conscience_n be_v very_o necessary_a 10._o 20._o a_o evil_a conscience_n drive_v man_n unto_o madness_n 7._o 26._o example_n of_o a_o evil_a conscience_n 5._o 2._o and_o 6._o 12._o consent_v of_o the_o wicked_a in_o oppress_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 23._o 6._o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o faithful_a 3._o 20._o and_o 4._o 18._o and_o 5._o 17._o 41._o &_o 7._o 55._o 59_o and_o 8._o 2._o &_o 9_o 5._o 37._o and_o 12._o 3._o 23_o and_o 14._o 21._o and_o 22._o 7._o conspiracy_n to_o put_v paul_n to_o death_n 23._o 12._o contention_n be_v to_o be_v avoid_v 23._o 9_o 10_o corinthus_n a_o sumptuous_a and_o populous_a city_n 18._o 1._o how_o long_o paul_n preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o corinthus_n 18_o 11._o cornelius_n the_o centurion_n 10._o 1._o 2._o cornelius_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n 10._o 3._o cornelius_n be_v one_o of_o the_o faithful_a before_o peter_n be_v send_v unto_o he_o 10._o 4._o wherein_o cornelius_n offend_v in_o give_v honour_n to_o peter_n 10._o 25._o cornelius_n his_o willing_a obedience_n 10._o 7._o covetousness_n be_v condemn_v 5._o 1._o &_o 10_o 2._o and_o 19_o 24._o and_o 20._o 33._o how_o great_a the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n be_v 15._o 2._o 28._o the_o decree_n
confuse_v but_o what_o do_v luke_n sure_o he_o note_v another_o order_n when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v choice_n make_v in_o the_o distribution_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o no_o man_n have_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v his_o own_o see_v all_o thing_n be_v common_a we_o may_v easy_o answer_n for_o this_o community_n or_o participation_n together_o must_v be_v restrain_v unto_o the_o circumstance_n which_o ensue_v immediate_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o poor_a may_v be_v relieve_v as_o every_o man_n have_v need_v we_o know_v the_o old_a proverb_n all_o thing_n be_v common_a among_o friend_n when_o as_o the_o scholar_n of_o pythagoras_n say_v thus_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o every_o man_n may_v govern_v his_o own_o house_n private_o neither_o do_v they_o intend_v to_o make_v their_o own_o wife_n common_a so_o that_o this_o have_v of_o thing_n common_a whereof_o luke_n speak_v and_o which_o he_o commend_v do_v not_o take_v away_o household_a government_n which_o thing_n shall_v better_o appear_v by_o the_o four_o chap._n where_o as_o he_o name_v two_o alone_a which_o sell_v their_o possession_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o whence_o we_o gather_v that_o which_o i_o say_v even_o now_o that_o they_o bring_v forth_o and_o make_v common_a their_o good_n in_o no_o other_o respect_n save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v relieve_v the_o present_a necessity_n and_o the_o impudency_n of_o the_o monk_n be_v ridiculous_a who_o do_v profess_v that_o they_o do_v observe_v the_o apostle_n rule_v because_o they_o call_v nothing_o their_o own_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o they_o neither_o sell_v any_o thing_n neither_o yet_o do_v they_o pass_v for_o any_o man_n poverty_n but_o they_o stuff_n their_o idle_a belly_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o poor_a neither_o do_v they_o regard_v any_o other_o thing_n in_o their_o have_v of_o thing_n common_a save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v be_v well_o fill_v and_o dainty_o although_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v hungry_a wherein_o then_o be_v they_o like_v to_o the_o first_o disciple_n with_o who_o they_o will_v be_v think_v to_o be_v able_a to_o compare_v 46_o and_o continue_v daily_o with_o one_o accord_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o break_v bread_n from_o house_n to_o house_n they_o do_v eat_v their_o meat_n with_o gladness_n and_o singleness_n of_o heart_n 47_o praising_n god_n and_o have_v favour_n with_o all_o the_o people_n and_o the_o lord_n add_v daily_o unto_o the_o congregation_n those_o which_o shall_v be_v save_v 46_o continue_v in_o the_o temple_n we_o must_v note_v that_o they_o do_v frequent_v the_o temple_n for_o this_o cause_n because_o there_o be_v more_o opportunity_n and_o occasion_n offer_v there_o to_o further_a the_o gospel_n neither_o be_v they_o draw_v with_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o place_n see_v they_o know_v that_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n be_v cease_v neither_o mean_v they_o to_o draw_v other_o by_o their_o example_n to_o have_v the_o temple_n in_o any_o such_o reverence_n but_o because_o there_o be_v there_o great_a concourse_n of_o people_n who_o have_v lay_v aside_o their_o private_a care_n wherewith_o they_o have_v be_v draw_v away_o else_o where_o do_v seek_v the_o lord_n they_o be_v continual_o in_o the_o temple_n that_o they_o may_v gain_v such_o unto_o christ_n there_o may_v be_v another_o reason_n which_o may_v induce_v they_o hereunto_o that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o mutual_a conference_n and_o impart_v of_o doctrine_n among_o themselves_o which_o they_o can_v not_o have_v do_v so_o convenient_o in_o a_o private_a house_n especial_o see_v they_o be_v so_o many_o break_v bread_n from_o house_n to_o house_n luke_n signify_v unto_o we_o that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o show_v some_o token_n of_o true_a godliness_n public_o but_o that_o the_o course_n &_o tenor_n of_o their_o private_a life_n be_v all_o one_o in_o that_o respect_n for_o whereas_o some_o do_v think_v that_o in_o this_o place_n by_o break_v of_o bread_n be_v mean_v the_o holy_a supper_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o luke_n mean_v no_o such_o thing_n he_o signify_v therefore_o unto_o we_o that_o they_o use_v to_o eat_v together_o and_o that_o thrifty_o for_o those_o which_o make_v sumptuous_a banquet_n do_v not_o eat_v their_o meat_n together_o so_o familiar_o again_o luke_n add_v in_o singleness_n of_o heart_n which_o be_v also_o a_o token_n of_o temperance_n in_o sum_n his_o meaning_n be_v to_o declare_v that_o their_o manner_n of_o live_v be_v brotherly_a and_o sober_a some_o do_v join_v simplicity_n &_o gladness_n with_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o both_o text_n may_v well_o be_v allow_v but_o because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o singleness_n of_o heart_n in_o praise_v god_n unless_o the_o same_o be_v also_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o life_n therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v thereof_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o faithful_a do_v always_o use_v the_o same_o in_o all_o place_n and_o we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n that_o be_v environ_v and_o beset_v with_o many_o danger_n they_o be_v merry_a &_o joyful_a the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n love_n towards_o we_o and_o the_o hope_n of_o his_o protection_n do_v bring_v we_o this_o goodness_n with_o they_o that_o we_o praise_v god_n with_o quiet_a mind_n whatsoever_o the_o world_n do_v threaten_v and_o as_o luke_n speak_v a_o little_a before_o of_o the_o public_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n so_o he_o declare_v now_o what_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o life_n the_o faithful_a do_v use_v that_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o their_o example_n a_o thrifty_a fellowship_n in_o our_o manner_n of_o live_v and_o in_o all_o our_o whole_a life_n to_o embrace_v singleness_n to_o enjoy_v the_o spiritual_a joy_n and_o to_o exercise_v ourselves_o in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n furthermore_n the_o singleness_n of_o heart_n reach_v far_o but_o if_o you_o join_v it_o in_o this_o place_n with_o break_v of_o bread_n it_o shall_v signify_v as_o much_o as_o sincere_a love_n where_o one_o man_n deal_v plain_o with_o a_o other_o neither_o do_v any_o man_n crafty_o hunt_v after_o his_o own_o profit_n yet_o have_v i_o rather_o set_v the_o same_o against_o that_o carefulness_n wherewith_o worldly_a man_n do_v too_o too_o much_o torment_v themselves_o for_o when_o as_o we_o do_v not_o cast_v our_o care_n upon_o the_o lord_n this_o reward_n hang_v over_o our_o head_n that_o we_o tremble_v and_o quake_v even_o when_o we_o take_v our_o rest_n 47_o have_v favour_n this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o a_o innocent_a life_n to_o find_v favour_n even_o among_o stranger_n and_o yet_o we_o need_v not_o to_o doubt_v of_o this_o but_o that_o they_o be_v hate_v of_o many_o but_o although_o he_o speak_v general_o of_o the_o people_n yet_o he_o mean_v that_o part_n alone_o which_o be_v sound_a neither_o yet_o infect_v with_o any_o poison_n of_o hatred_n he_o signify_v brief_o that_o the_o faithful_a do_v so_o behave_v themselves_o that_o the_o people_n do_v full_a well_o like_a of_o they_o for_o their_o innocence_n of_o life_n the_o lord_n add_v daily_o he_o show_v in_o these_o word_n that_o their_o diligence_n be_v not_o without_o profit_n they_o study_v so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v to_o gather_v into_o the_o lord_n sheepfold_a those_o which_o wander_v and_o go_v astray_o he_o say_v that_o their_o labour_n bestow_v herein_o be_v not_o lose_v because_o the_o lord_n do_v increase_v his_o church_n daily_o and_o sure_o whereas_o the_o church_n be_v rather_o diminish_v than_o increase_v that_o be_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o our_o slothfulness_n or_o rather_o forwardness_n and_o although_o they_o do_v all_o of_o they_o stout_o labour_v to_o increase_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n yet_o luke_n ascribe_v this_o honour_n to_o god_n alone_o that_o he_o bring_v stranger_n into_o the_o church_n and_o sure_o this_o be_v his_o own_o proper_a work_n for_o the_o minister_n do_v no_o good_a by_o plant_v or_o water_v 3_o i._o corinth_n 3_o unless_o he_o make_v their_o labour_n effectual_a by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o say_v that_o those_o be_v gather_v unto_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o he_o teach_v that_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o attain_v to_o salvation_n if_o we_o be_v incorporate_a into_o the_o church_n for_o like_a as_o there_o be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n so_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o hope_n of_o salvation_n furthermore_o this_o be_v a_o excellent_a comfort_n for_o all_o the_o godly_a that_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v as_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o power_n of_o god_n 1.16_o rom._n 1.16_o unto_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v now_o for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n do_v gather_v only_o a_o part_n
or_o a_o certain_a number_n this_o grace_n be_v restreyn_v unto_o election_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n chap._n iii_o 1_o time_n 1_o or_o almost_o at_o that_o time_n now_o peter_n and_o john_n go_v up_o together_o into_o the_o temple_n about_o the_o nine_o hour_n of_o prayer_n 2_o furthermore_o a_o certain_a man_n which_o be_v lame_a from_o his_o mother_n womb_n be_v carry_v who_o they_o lay_v daily_o at_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v call_v beautiful_a that_o he_o may_v ask_v alm_n of_o those_o which_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n 3_o when_o he_o see_v peter_n and_o john_n draw_v near_o to_o the_o temple_n he_o ask_v a_o alm_n 4_o and_o peter_n behold_v he_o earnest_o with_o john_n say_v look_v on_o us._n 5_o and_o he_o give_v heed_n unto_o they_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v receive_v somewhat_o of_o they_o 6_o and_o peter_n say_v silver_n and_o gold_n have_v i_o none_o but_o such_o as_o i_o have_v give_v i_o thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n of_o nazareth_n a_o rise_n and_o walk_v 7_o and_o when_o he_o have_v take_v he_o by_o the_o right_a hand_n he_o lift_v he_o up_o and_o immediate_o his_o foot_n and_o ankle_n bone_n receive_v strength_n 8_o and_o leap_v up_o he_o stand_v and_o walk_v and_o enter_v with_o they_o into_o the_o temple_n walk_v and_o leap_v and_o praise_v god_n 9_o and_o all_o the_o people_n see_v he_o walk_v and_o praise_v god_n 10_o and_o they_o know_v he_o that_o it_o be_v he_o which_o be_v wont_a to_o sit_v for_o the_o alm_n at_o the_o beautiful_a gate_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o wonder_v and_o be_v astonish_v at_o that_o thing_n which_o be_v come_v unto_o he_o 11_o moreover_o when_o the_o lame_a man_n which_o be_v heal_v hold_v peter_n and_o john_n all_o the_o people_n run_v amaze_v unto_o they_o into_o the_o porch_n which_o be_v call_v solomon_n 1_o we_o see_v before_o that_o many_o sign_n be_v show_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n now_o luke_n recite_v one_o of_o many_o for_o example_n sake_n after_o his_o common_a custom_n namely_o that_o a_o lame_a man_n which_o be_v lame_a of_o his_o foot_n from_o his_o mother_n womb_n be_v perfect_o restore_v to_o his_o limb_n and_o he_o do_v diligent_o gather_v all_o the_o circumstance_n which_o serve_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o miracle_n if_o it_o have_v be_v that_o his_o leg_n have_v be_v out_o of_o joint_n or_o if_o it_o have_v be_v some_o disease_n come_v by_o some_o casualty_n it_o may_v have_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o cure_v but_o the_o default_n of_o nature_n can_v not_o have_v be_v so_o easy_o redress_v when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v carry_v we_o gather_v thereby_o that_o it_o be_v no_o light_a halt_n but_o that_o this_o man_n do_v lie_v as_o if_o his_o leg_n have_v be_v dead_a forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v wont_v daily_o to_o ask_v alm_n hereby_o all_o the_o people_n may_v the_o better_a know_v he_o in_o that_o be_v heal_v he_o walk_v in_o the_o temple_n at_o the_o time_n of_o prayer_n this_o serve_v to_o spread_v abroad_o the_o fame_n of_o the_o miracle_n furthermore_o this_o do_v not_o a_o little_a set_v forth_o the_o same_o that_o be_v lift_v up_o and_o set_v upon_o his_o foot_n he_o leap_v up_o therewithal_o and_o walk_v joyful_o go_v up_o together_o because_o these_o word_n epi_fw-la to_o auto_fw-la do_v no_o more_o signify_v place_n than_o time_n this_o latter_a sense_n seem_v better_a to_o agree_v with_o the_o text_n of_o peter_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v of_o no_o great_a importance_n i_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a that_o be_v call_v the_o nine_o hour_n of_o prayer_n when_o as_o the_o day_n begin_v to_o draw_v towards_o night_n for_o see_v the_o day_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_n down_o thereof_o have_v twelve_o hour_n as_o i_o have_v say_v else_o where_o all_o that_o time_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o part_n so_o that_o by_o the_o nine_o be_v mean_v the_o last_o portion_n of_o the_o day_n as_o the_o first_o hour_n do_v continue_v unto_o the_o three_o the_o three_o unto_o the_o sixth_o the_o sixth_o unto_o the_o nine_o hence_o may_v we_o gather_v by_o a_o probable_a conjecture_n that_o that_o hour_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o evening_n sacrifice_n furthermore_o if_o any_o man_n ask_v whether_o the_o apostle_n go_v up_o into_o the_o temple_n that_o they_o may_v pray_v according_a to_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o law_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o likely_a to_o be_v true_a as_o that_o they_o may_v have_v better_a opportunity_n to_o spread_v abroad_o the_o gospel_n and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v abuse_v this_o place_n as_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o use_v and_o take_v up_o superstitious_a worshipping_n while_o that_o we_o be_v conversant_a among_o the_o ignorant_a and_o weak_a his_o reason_n shall_v be_v frivolous_a the_o lord_n appoint_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v offer_v sacrifice_n morning_n and_o evening_n by_o this_o exercise_n be_v they_o teach_v 28.2_o exod._n ●9_n 41_o num._n 28.2_o to_o begin_v and_o end_v the_o day_n with_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o with_o worship_v he_o therefore_o peter_n and_o john_n may_v free_o come_v into_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n neither_o do_v they_o pollute_v themselves_o see_v they_o call_v upon_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o may_v thereby_o declare_v their_o godliness_n first_o in_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o old_a people_n to_o observe_v the_o appoint_a hour_n we_o gather_v thereby_o that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o certain_a discipline_n and_o even_o at_o this_o day_n be_v it_o profitable_a for_o we_o to_o have_v such_o meeting_n daily_o unless_o our_o too_o too_o much_o sluggishness_n do_v let_v us._n and_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n go_v uppe_o at_o that_o hour_n hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o we_o must_v foreslowe_v no_o opportunity_n that_o be_v offer_v we_o for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3_o he_o ask_v a_o alm_n we_o see_v how_o god_n restore_v this_o lame_a man_n to_o his_o limb_n contrary_a to_o his_o expectation_n because_o he_o think_v that_o his_o disease_n be_v incurable_a he_o be_v only_o careful_a for_o maintenance_n that_o be_v give_v he_o which_o he_o dare_v never_o have_v ask_v in_o like_a sort_n god_n do_v oftentimes_o prevent_v we_o neither_o do_v he_o stay_v until_o he_o be_v provoke_v and_o hence_o can_v we_o not_o gather_v any_o occasion_n of_o slothfulness_n as_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v therefore_o meet_v we_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n that_o be_v idle_a and_o slothful_a we_o may_v suffer_v the_o lord_n to_o do_v good_a unto_o us._n for_o we_o be_v command_v to_o pray_v and_o therefore_o let_v we_o not_o foreslowe_v our_o duty_n but_o first_o of_o all_o under_o the_o person_n of_o the_o lame_a man_n we_o have_v set_v before_o we_o a_o example_n of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v not_o yet_o illuminate_v by_o faith_n that_o he_o may_v know_v how_o to_o pray_v aright_o such_o do_v god_n prevent_v as_o it_o be_v needful_a even_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n therefore_o when_o as_o he_o restore_v our_o soul_n not_o only_o to_o health_n but_o also_o to_o life_n he_o himself_o be_v to_o himself_o the_o cause_n hereof_o for_o this_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o our_o call_n that_o he_o may_v make_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v which_o be_v not_o 4.17_o rom._n 4.17_o that_o he_o may_v show_v himself_o unto_o those_o who_o seek_v not_o after_o he_o furthermore_o howsoever_o we_o be_v already_o teach_v by_o faith_n to_o pray_v unto_o god_n yet_o because_o we_o do_v not_o always_o feel_v our_o misery_n it_o come_v not_o into_o our_o mind_n to_o seek_v for_o remedy_n therefore_o the_o lord_n bring_v the_o same_o free_o and_o unlooked_a for_o final_o howsoever_o we_o be_v bend_v to_o pray_v yet_o do_v he_o exceed_v our_o hope_n and_o petition_n with_o his_o goodness_n 4_o look_v upon_o us._n peter_n do_v not_o thus_o speak_v before_o he_o be_v certain_a of_o the_o purpose_n and_o intent_n of_o god_n and_o sure_o in_o these_o word_n he_o command_v he_o to_o hope_v for_o some_o singular_a and_o unwoonted_a benefit_n yet_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v move_v whether_o they_o have_v power_n to_o work_v miracle_n so_o often_o as_o they_o will_v i_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o god_n power_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o do_v attempt_v nothing_o of_o their_o own_o will_n or_o proper_a motion_n but_o the_o lord_n wrought_v by_o they_o when_o he_o know_v that_o it_o be_v expedient_a it_o shall_v be_v so_o hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o heal_v